Line 1: |
Line 1: |
| + | {{#seo: |
| + | |title=Rajayakshma Chikitsa |
| + | |titlemode=append |
| + | |keywords=Rajayakshma, kshaya, shosha, tuberculosis, vyadhikshamatva, dhatukshaya, immunity, depletion of tissues |
| + | |description=Chikitsa Sthana Chapter 8. Management of Rajayakshma (Wasting Diseases) |
| + | }} |
| + | |
| <big>'''[[Chikitsa Sthana]] Chapter 8. Management of Rajayakshma (Wasting Diseases)</big>''' | | <big>'''[[Chikitsa Sthana]] Chapter 8. Management of Rajayakshma (Wasting Diseases)</big>''' |
| | | |
Line 38: |
Line 45: |
| | | |
| ===Sanskrit text, Transliteration and English Translation=== | | ===Sanskrit text, Transliteration and English Translation=== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
| अथातो राजयक्ष्मचिकित्सितं व्याख्यास्यामः||१|| | | अथातो राजयक्ष्मचिकित्सितं व्याख्यास्यामः||१|| |
| | | |
| इति ह स्माह भगवानात्रेयः||२|| | | इति ह स्माह भगवानात्रेयः||२|| |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
| athātō rājayakṣmacikitsitaṁ vyākhyāsyāmaḥ||1|| | | athātō rājayakṣmacikitsitaṁ vyākhyāsyāmaḥ||1|| |
Line 50: |
Line 59: |
| | | |
| iti ha smAha bhagavAnAtreyaH||2|| | | iti ha smAha bhagavAnAtreyaH||2|| |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Now we shall expound the chapter entitled “The management of ''Rajayakshma''". Thus said Lord Atreya [1-2] | | Now we shall expound the chapter entitled “The management of ''Rajayakshma''". Thus said Lord Atreya [1-2] |
| | | |
| ==== History of disease ==== | | ==== History of disease ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | दिवौकसां कथयतामृषिभिर्वै श्रुता कथा| | + | दिवौकसां कथयतामृषिभिर्वै श्रुता कथा| <br /> |
− | कामव्यसनसंयुक्ता पौराणी शशिनं प्रति||३|| | + | कामव्यसनसंयुक्ता पौराणी शशिनं प्रति||३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | रोहिण्यामतिसक्तस्य शरीरं नानुरक्षतः| | + | रोहिण्यामतिसक्तस्य शरीरं नानुरक्षतः| <br /> |
− | आजगामाल्पतामिन्दोर्देहः स्नेहपरिक्षयात्||४|| | + | आजगामाल्पतामिन्दोर्देहः स्नेहपरिक्षयात्||४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | दुहितॄणामसम्भोगाच्छेषाणां च प्रजापतेः| | + | दुहितॄणामसम्भोगाच्छेषाणां च प्रजापतेः| <br /> |
− | क्रोधो निःश्वासरूपेण मूर्तिमान् निःसृतो मुखात्||५|| | + | क्रोधो निःश्वासरूपेण मूर्तिमान् निःसृतो मुखात्||५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रजापतेर्हि दुहितॄरष्टाविंशतिमंशुमान्| | + | प्रजापतेर्हि दुहितॄरष्टाविंशतिमंशुमान्| <br /> |
− | भार्यार्थं प्रतिजग्राह न च सर्वास्ववर्तत||६|| | + | भार्यार्थं प्रतिजग्राह न च सर्वास्ववर्तत||६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | गुरुणा तमवध्यातं भार्यास्वसमवर्तिनम्| | + | गुरुणा तमवध्यातं भार्यास्वसमवर्तिनम्| <br /> |
− | रजःपरीतमबलं यक्ष्मा शशिनमाविशत्||७|| | + | रजःपरीतमबलं यक्ष्मा शशिनमाविशत्||७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सोऽभिभूतोऽतिमहता गुरुक्रोधेन निष्प्रभः| | + | सोऽभिभूतोऽतिमहता गुरुक्रोधेन निष्प्रभः| <br /> |
− | देवदेवर्षिसहितो जगाम शरणं गुरुम्||८|| | + | देवदेवर्षिसहितो जगाम शरणं गुरुम्||८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | अथ चन्द्रमसः शुद्धां मतिं बुद्ध्वा प्रजापतिः| | + | अथ चन्द्रमसः शुद्धां मतिं बुद्ध्वा प्रजापतिः| <br /> |
− | प्रसादं कृतवान् सोमस्ततोऽश्विभ्यां चिकित्सितः||९|| | + | प्रसादं कृतवान् सोमस्ततोऽश्विभ्यां चिकित्सितः||९||<br /> |
| | | |
− | स विमुक्तग्रहश्चन्द्रो विरराज विशेषतः| | + | स विमुक्तग्रहश्चन्द्रो विरराज विशेषतः| <br /> |
− | ओजसा [२] वर्धितोऽश्विभ्यां शुद्धं सत्त्वमवाप च||१०|| | + | ओजसा [२] वर्धितोऽश्विभ्यां शुद्धं सत्त्वमवाप च||१०|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | divaukasāṁ kathayatāmr̥ṣibhirvai śrutā kathā| | + | divaukasāṁ kathayatāmr̥ṣibhirvai śrutā kathā| <br /> |
− | kāmavyasanasaṁyuktā paurāṇī śaśinaṁ prati||3|| | + | kāmavyasanasaṁyuktā paurāṇī śaśinaṁ prati||3|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rōhiṇyāmatisaktasya śarīraṁ nānurakṣataḥ| | + | rōhiṇyāmatisaktasya śarīraṁ nānurakṣataḥ| <br /> |
− | ājagāmālpatāmindōrdēhaḥ snēhaparikṣayāt||4|| | + | ājagāmālpatāmindōrdēhaḥ snēhaparikṣayāt||4|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | duhitr̥̄ṇāmasambhōgācchēṣāṇāṁ ca prajāpatēḥ| | + | duhitr̥̄ṇāmasambhōgācchēṣāṇāṁ ca prajāpatēḥ| <br /> |
− | krōdhō niḥśvāsarūpēṇa mūrtimān niḥsr̥tō mukhāt||5|| | + | krōdhō niḥśvāsarūpēṇa mūrtimān niḥsr̥tō mukhāt||5|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prajāpatērhi duhitr̥̄raṣṭāviṁśatimaṁśumān| | + | prajāpatērhi duhitr̥̄raṣṭāviṁśatimaṁśumān| <br /> |
− | bhāryārthaṁ pratijagrāha na ca sarvāsvavartata||6|| | + | bhāryārthaṁ pratijagrāha na ca sarvāsvavartata||6|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | guruṇā tamavadhyātaṁ bhāryāsvasamavartinam| | + | guruṇā tamavadhyātaṁ bhāryāsvasamavartinam| <br /> |
− | rajaḥparītamabalaṁ yakṣmā śaśinamāviśat||7|| | + | rajaḥparītamabalaṁ yakṣmā śaśinamāviśat||7|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sō'bhibhūtō'timahatā [1] gurukrōdhēna niṣprabhaḥ| | + | sō'bhibhūtō'timahatā [1] gurukrōdhēna niṣprabhaḥ| <br /> |
− | dēvadēvarṣisahitō jagāma śaraṇaṁ gurum||8|| | + | dēvadēvarṣisahitō jagāma śaraṇaṁ gurum||8|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | atha candramasaḥ śuddhāṁ matiṁ buddhvā prajāpatiḥ| | + | atha candramasaḥ śuddhāṁ matiṁ buddhvā prajāpatiḥ|<br /> |
− | prasādaṁ kr̥tavān sōmastatō'śvibhyāṁ cikitsitaḥ||9|| | + | prasādaṁ kr̥tavān sōmastatō'śvibhyāṁ cikitsitaḥ||9|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa vimuktagrahaścandrō virarāja viśēṣataḥ| | + | sa vimuktagrahaścandrō virarāja viśēṣataḥ| <br /> |
− | ōjasā [2] vardhitō'śvibhyāṁ śuddhaṁ sattvamavāpa ca||10|| | + | ōjasā [2] vardhitō'śvibhyāṁ śuddhaṁ sattvamavāpa ca||10|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | divaukasAM kathayatAmRuShibhirvai shrutA kathA| | + | divaukasAM kathayatAmRuShibhirvai shrutA kathA| <br /> |
− | kAmavyasanasaMyuktA paurANI shashinaM prati||3|| | + | kAmavyasanasaMyuktA paurANI shashinaM prati||3|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rohiNyAmatisaktasya sharIraM nAnurakShataH| | + | rohiNyAmatisaktasya sharIraM nAnurakShataH| <br /> |
− | AjagAmAlpatAmindordehaH snehaparikShayAt||4|| | + | AjagAmAlpatAmindordehaH snehaparikShayAt||4|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | duhitRUNAmasambhogAccheShANAM ca prajApateH| | + | duhitRUNAmasambhogAccheShANAM ca prajApateH| <br /> |
− | krodho niHshvAsarUpeNa mUrtimAn niHsRuto mukhAt||5|| | + | krodho niHshvAsarUpeNa mUrtimAn niHsRuto mukhAt||5|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prajApaterhi duhitRUraShTAviMshatimaMshumAn| | + | prajApaterhi duhitRUraShTAviMshatimaMshumAn| <br /> |
− | bhAryArthaM pratijagrAha na ca sarvAsvavartata||6|| | + | bhAryArthaM pratijagrAha na ca sarvAsvavartata||6|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | guruNA tamavadhyAtaM bhAryAsvasamavartinam| | + | guruNA tamavadhyAtaM bhAryAsvasamavartinam| <br /> |
− | rajaHparItamabalaM yakShmA shashinamAvishat||7|| | + | rajaHparItamabalaM yakShmA shashinamAvishat||7|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | so~abhibhUto~atimahatA [1] gurukrodhena niShprabhaH| | + | so~abhibhUto~atimahatA [1] gurukrodhena niShprabhaH| <br /> |
− | devadevarShisahito jagAma sharaNaM gurum||8|| | + | devadevarShisahito jagAma sharaNaM gurum||8|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | atha candramasaH shuddhAM matiM buddhvA prajApatiH| | + | atha candramasaH shuddhAM matiM buddhvA prajApatiH| <br /> |
− | prasAdaM kRutavAn somastato~ashvibhyAM cikitsitaH||9|| | + | prasAdaM kRutavAn somastato~ashvibhyAM cikitsitaH||9|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa vimuktagrahashcandro virarAja visheShataH| | + | sa vimuktagrahashcandro virarAja visheShataH| <br /> |
− | ojasA [2] vardhito~ashvibhyAM shuddhaM sattvamavApa ca||10|| | + | ojasA [2] vardhito~ashvibhyAM shuddhaM sattvamavApa ca||10|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The following story – of Chandrama (Moon)’s passionate cohabiting (with Rohini, one of his 28 celestial wives) - was narrated by the Gods to the sages. Because of his excessive sexual indulgence with Rohini, Chandrama soon started neglecting his own health, becoming emaciated due to depletion of his bodily unctuousness (essence or vitality). Besides, his inordinate attention to just one wife in comparison to the others resulted in his not being able to satisfy the desires of his remaining wives – all of whom were the daughters of Daksha Prajapati (Lord of Progeny). This ill-treatment to his daughters made Daksha furious, and his anger came out of his mouth in the form of breath that took a physical form (Yakshma). The now lusterless, afflicted Moon sought clemency from the great Daksha, accompanied by the Gods and Sages. Daksha Prajapati , now realizing Chandrama’s pure state of mind (and therefore, admitting his folly), became cordial to him got him treated by the Ashwin, the celestial physicians. The Ashwins having enhanced his ''ojas'' (vital essence), Chandrama additionally acquired a great purity of mind. [3-10] | | The following story – of Chandrama (Moon)’s passionate cohabiting (with Rohini, one of his 28 celestial wives) - was narrated by the Gods to the sages. Because of his excessive sexual indulgence with Rohini, Chandrama soon started neglecting his own health, becoming emaciated due to depletion of his bodily unctuousness (essence or vitality). Besides, his inordinate attention to just one wife in comparison to the others resulted in his not being able to satisfy the desires of his remaining wives – all of whom were the daughters of Daksha Prajapati (Lord of Progeny). This ill-treatment to his daughters made Daksha furious, and his anger came out of his mouth in the form of breath that took a physical form (Yakshma). The now lusterless, afflicted Moon sought clemency from the great Daksha, accompanied by the Gods and Sages. Daksha Prajapati , now realizing Chandrama’s pure state of mind (and therefore, admitting his folly), became cordial to him got him treated by the Ashwin, the celestial physicians. The Ashwins having enhanced his ''ojas'' (vital essence), Chandrama additionally acquired a great purity of mind. [3-10] |
| | | |
| ==== Synonyms of disease and history of ''yakshma''==== | | ==== Synonyms of disease and history of ''yakshma''==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | क्रोधो यक्ष्मा ज्वरो रोग एकार्थो दुःखसञ्ज्ञकः| | + | क्रोधो यक्ष्मा ज्वरो रोग एकार्थो दुःखसञ्ज्ञकः| <br /> |
− | यस्मात् स राज्ञः प्रागासीद्राजयक्ष्मा ततो मतः||११|| | + | यस्मात् स राज्ञः प्रागासीद्राजयक्ष्मा ततो मतः||११|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स यक्ष्मा हुङ्कृतोऽश्विभ्यां मानुषं लोकमागतः| | + | स यक्ष्मा हुङ्कृतोऽश्विभ्यां मानुषं लोकमागतः| <br /> |
− | लब्ध्वा चतुर्विधं हेतुं समाविशति मानवान्||१२|| | + | लब्ध्वा चतुर्विधं हेतुं समाविशति मानवान्||१२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | krōdhō yakṣmā jvarō rōga ēkārthō duḥkhasañjñakaḥ| | + | krōdhō yakṣmā jvarō rōga ēkārthō duḥkhasañjñakaḥ| <br /> |
− | yasmāt sa rājñaḥ prāgāsīdrājayakṣmā tatō mataḥ||11|| | + | yasmāt sa rājñaḥ prāgāsīdrājayakṣmā tatō mataḥ||11|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa yakṣmā huṅkr̥tō'śvibhyāṁ mānuṣaṁ lōkamāgataḥ| | + | sa yakṣmā huṅkr̥tō'śvibhyāṁ mānuṣaṁ lōkamāgataḥ| <br /> |
− | labdhvā caturvidhaṁ hētuṁ samāviśati mānavān||12|| | + | labdhvā caturvidhaṁ hētuṁ samāviśati mānavān||12||<br /> |
| | | |
− | krodho yakShmA jvaro roga ekArtho duHkhasa~jj~jakaH| | + | krodho yakShmA jvaro roga ekArtho duHkhasa~jj~jakaH| <br /> |
− | yasmAt sa rAj~jaH prAgAsIdrAjayakShmA tato mataH||11|| | + | yasmAt sa rAj~jaH prAgAsIdrAjayakShmA tato mataH||11|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa yakShmA hu~gkRuto~ashvibhyAM mAnuShaM lokamAgataH| | + | sa yakShmA hu~gkRuto~ashvibhyAM mAnuShaM lokamAgataH| <br /> |
− | labdhvA caturvidhaM hetuM samAvishati mAnavAn||12|| | + | labdhvA caturvidhaM hetuM samAvishati mAnavAn||12||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| ''Krodha''(rage), ''yakshma'' (sickness), ''jwara''(fever) and ''roga'' (disease suffering) – these terms are synonymous, and indicate misery. Because it afflicted Chandrama, the king of stars, originally, it is called ''rajayakshma'', or the king of diseases.This disease, having been treated by the Ashwin in the celestial world, has come down to the world of mortals (i.e., human beings). Here, it afflicts human beings after being triggered by a four-fold causative factor [11-12] | | ''Krodha''(rage), ''yakshma'' (sickness), ''jwara''(fever) and ''roga'' (disease suffering) – these terms are synonymous, and indicate misery. Because it afflicted Chandrama, the king of stars, originally, it is called ''rajayakshma'', or the king of diseases.This disease, having been treated by the Ashwin in the celestial world, has come down to the world of mortals (i.e., human beings). Here, it afflicts human beings after being triggered by a four-fold causative factor [11-12] |
| | | |
| ==== Four important causative factors of disease ==== | | ==== Four important causative factors of disease ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | अयथाबलमारम्भं वेगसन्धारणं क्षयम्| | + | अयथाबलमारम्भं वेगसन्धारणं क्षयम्| <br /> |
− | यक्ष्मणः कारणं विद्याच्चतुर्थं विषमाशनम्||१३|| | + | यक्ष्मणः कारणं विद्याच्चतुर्थं विषमाशनम्||१३||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | ayathābalamārambhaṁ vēgasandhāraṇaṁ kṣayam| | + | ayathābalamārambhaṁ vēgasandhāraṇaṁ kṣayam| <br /> |
− | yakṣmaṇaḥ kāraṇaṁ vidyāccaturthaṁ viṣamāśanam||13|| | + | yakṣmaṇaḥ kāraṇaṁ vidyāccaturthaṁ viṣamāśanam||13||<br /> |
| | | |
− | ayathAbalamArambhaM vegasandhAraNaM kShayam| | + | ayathAbalamArambhaM vegasandhAraNaM kShayam| <br /> |
− | yakShmaNaH kAraNaM vidyAccaturthaM viShamAshanam||13|| | + | yakShmaNaH kAraNaM vidyAccaturthaM viShamAshanam||13||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Over–exertion beyond one’s capacity, suppression of natural urges, depletion of tissue elements and irregular dietary habits are the etiological factors of ''rajayakshma''. [13] | | Over–exertion beyond one’s capacity, suppression of natural urges, depletion of tissue elements and irregular dietary habits are the etiological factors of ''rajayakshma''. [13] |
| | | |
| ===== 1. ''Sahasaja rajayakshma'' (due to over exertion beyond one’s capacity) ===== | | ===== 1. ''Sahasaja rajayakshma'' (due to over exertion beyond one’s capacity) ===== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | युद्धाध्ययनभाराध्वलङ्घनप्लवनादिभिः| | + | युद्धाध्ययनभाराध्वलङ्घनप्लवनादिभिः| <br /> |
− | पतनैरभिघातैर्वा साहसैर्वा तथाऽपरैः||१४|| | + | पतनैरभिघातैर्वा साहसैर्वा तथाऽपरैः||१४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | अयथाबलमारम्भैर्जन्तोरुरसि विक्षते| | + | अयथाबलमारम्भैर्जन्तोरुरसि विक्षते| <br /> |
− | वायुः प्रकुपितो दोषावुदीर्योभौ प्रधावति||१५|| | + | वायुः प्रकुपितो दोषावुदीर्योभौ प्रधावति||१५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स शिरःस्थः शिरःशूलं करोति गलमाश्रितः| | + | स शिरःस्थः शिरःशूलं करोति गलमाश्रितः| <br /> |
− | कण्ठोद्ध्वंसं च कासं च स्वरभेदमरोचकम्||१६|| | + | कण्ठोद्ध्वंसं च कासं च स्वरभेदमरोचकम्||१६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पार्श्वशूलं च पार्श्वस्थो वर्चोभेदं गुदे स्थितः| | + | पार्श्वशूलं च पार्श्वस्थो वर्चोभेदं गुदे स्थितः| <br /> |
− | जृम्भां ज्वरं च सन्धिस्थ उरःस्थश्चोरसो रुजम्||१७|| | + | जृम्भां ज्वरं च सन्धिस्थ उरःस्थश्चोरसो रुजम्||१७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | क्षणनादुरसः कासात् कफं ष्ठीवेत् सशोणितम्| | + | क्षणनादुरसः कासात् कफं ष्ठीवेत् सशोणितम्| <br /> |
− | जर्जरेणोरसा कृच्छ्रमुरःशूलातिपीडितः||१८|| | + | जर्जरेणोरसा कृच्छ्रमुरःशूलातिपीडितः||१८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | इति साहसिको यक्ष्मा रूपैरेतैः प्रपद्यते| | + | इति साहसिको यक्ष्मा रूपैरेतैः प्रपद्यते| <br /> |
− | एकादशभिरात्मज्ञो भजेत्तस्मान्न साहसम्||१९|| | + | एकादशभिरात्मज्ञो भजेत्तस्मान्न साहसम्||१९||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | yuddhādhyayanabhārādhvalaṅghanaplavanādibhiḥ| | + | yuddhādhyayanabhārādhvalaṅghanaplavanādibhiḥ| <br /> |
− | patanairabhighātairvā sāhasairvā tathā'paraiḥ||14|| | + | patanairabhighātairvā sāhasairvā tathā'paraiḥ||14|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ayathābalamārambhairjantōrurasi vikṣatē| | + | ayathābalamārambhairjantōrurasi vikṣatē| <br /> |
− | vāyuḥ prakupitō dōṣāvudīryōbhau pradhāvati||15|| | + | vāyuḥ prakupitō dōṣāvudīryōbhau pradhāvati||15|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa śiraḥsthaḥ śiraḥśūlaṁ karōti galamāśritaḥ| | + | sa śiraḥsthaḥ śiraḥśūlaṁ karōti galamāśritaḥ| <br /> |
− | kaṇṭhōddhvaṁsaṁ ca kāsaṁ ca svarabhēdamarōcakam||16|| | + | kaṇṭhōddhvaṁsaṁ ca kāsaṁ ca svarabhēdamarōcakam||16|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pārśvaśūlaṁ ca pārśvasthō varcōbhēdaṁ gudē sthitaḥ| | + | pārśvaśūlaṁ ca pārśvasthō varcōbhēdaṁ gudē sthitaḥ| <br /> |
− | jr̥mbhāṁ jvaraṁ ca sandhistha uraḥsthaścōrasō rujam||17|| | + | jr̥mbhāṁ jvaraṁ ca sandhistha uraḥsthaścōrasō rujam||17|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kṣaṇanādurasaḥ kāsāt kaphaṁ ṣṭhīvēt saśōṇitam| | + | kṣaṇanādurasaḥ kāsāt kaphaṁ ṣṭhīvēt saśōṇitam| <br /> |
− | jarjarēṇōrasā kr̥cchramuraḥśūlātipīḍitaḥ||18|| | + | jarjarēṇōrasā kr̥cchramuraḥśūlātipīḍitaḥ||18|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti sāhasikō yakṣmā rūpairētaiḥ prapadyatē| | + | iti sāhasikō yakṣmā rūpairētaiḥ prapadyatē| <br /> |
− | ēkādaśabhirātmajñō bhajēttasmānna sāhasam||19|| | + | ēkādaśabhirātmajñō bhajēttasmānna sāhasam||19||<br /> |
| | | |
− | yuddhAdhyayanabhArAdhvala~gghanaplavanAdibhiH| | + | yuddhAdhyayanabhArAdhvala~gghanaplavanAdibhiH| <br /> |
− | patanairabhighAtairvA sAhasairvA tathA~aparaiH||14|| | + | patanairabhighAtairvA sAhasairvA tathA~aparaiH||14|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ayathAbalamArambhairjantorurasi vikShate| | + | ayathAbalamArambhairjantorurasi vikShate| <br /> |
− | vAyuH prakupito doShAvudIryobhau pradhAvati||15|| | + | vAyuH prakupito doShAvudIryobhau pradhAvati||15|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sa shiraHsthaH shiraHshUlaM karoti galamAshritaH| | + | sa shiraHsthaH shiraHshUlaM karoti galamAshritaH| <br /> |
− | kaNThoddhvaMsaM ca kAsaM ca svarabhedamarocakam||16|| | + | kaNThoddhvaMsaM ca kAsaM ca svarabhedamarocakam||16|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pArshvashUlaM ca pArshvastho varcobhedaM gude sthitaH| | + | pArshvashUlaM ca pArshvastho varcobhedaM gude sthitaH| <br /> |
− | jRumbhAM jvaraM ca sandhistha uraHsthashcoraso rujam||17|| | + | jRumbhAM jvaraM ca sandhistha uraHsthashcoraso rujam||17|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kShaNanAdurasaH [1] kAsAt kaphaM ShThIvet sashoNitam| | + | kShaNanAdurasaH [1] kAsAt kaphaM ShThIvet sashoNitam| <br /> |
− | jarjareNorasA kRucchramuraHshUlAtipIDitaH||18|| | + | jarjareNorasA kRucchramuraHshUlAtipIDitaH||18|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti sAhasiko yakShmA rUpairetaiH prapadyate| | + | iti sAhasiko yakShmA rUpairetaiH prapadyate| <br /> |
− | ekAdashabhirAtmaj~jo bhajettasmAnna [2] sAhasam||19|| | + | ekAdashabhirAtmaj~jo bhajettasmAnna [2] sAhasam||19||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| When beyond one’s capacity, a person indulges in excess battle, reading, weight-lifting, walking, jumping, swimming etc. or falls down - or gets injured -or exerts himself in any action that is beyond his strength or tolerance, leads to chest injury and , vitiates ''vata dosha''. This ''vata dosha'' afflicts the other two (''pitta'' and ''kapha dosha''). These vitiated ''dosha'', along with ''vayu'', spread in all direction within body (''pradhavati'') and cause eleven symptoms, with each symptom directly corresponding to the particular part of the body. If the deranged ''dosha'' enters the head, it causes headache; if the throat, then irritation in throat, cough, hoarseness of voice and anorexia; if the chest, then pain in the sides of the chest; if the anus, then diarrhea; if in the joints, then fever, yawning and pain in the chest. | | When beyond one’s capacity, a person indulges in excess battle, reading, weight-lifting, walking, jumping, swimming etc. or falls down - or gets injured -or exerts himself in any action that is beyond his strength or tolerance, leads to chest injury and , vitiates ''vata dosha''. This ''vata dosha'' afflicts the other two (''pitta'' and ''kapha dosha''). These vitiated ''dosha'', along with ''vayu'', spread in all direction within body (''pradhavati'') and cause eleven symptoms, with each symptom directly corresponding to the particular part of the body. If the deranged ''dosha'' enters the head, it causes headache; if the throat, then irritation in throat, cough, hoarseness of voice and anorexia; if the chest, then pain in the sides of the chest; if the anus, then diarrhea; if in the joints, then fever, yawning and pain in the chest. |
Line 225: |
Line 247: |
| | | |
| ===== 2. ''Vegasandharanaja rajayakshma'' (due to suppression of natural urges) ===== | | ===== 2. ''Vegasandharanaja rajayakshma'' (due to suppression of natural urges) ===== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | ह्रीमत्त्वाद्वा घृणित्वाद्वा भयाद्वा वेगमागतम्| | + | ह्रीमत्त्वाद्वा घृणित्वाद्वा भयाद्वा वेगमागतम्| <br /> |
− | वातमूत्रपुरीषाणां निगृह्णाति यदा नरः||२०|| | + | वातमूत्रपुरीषाणां निगृह्णाति यदा नरः||२०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तदा वेगप्रतीघातात् कफपित्ते समीरयन्| | + | तदा वेगप्रतीघातात् कफपित्ते समीरयन्| <br /> |
− | ऊर्ध्वं तिर्यगधश्चैव विकारान् कुरुतेऽनिलः||२१|| | + | ऊर्ध्वं तिर्यगधश्चैव विकारान् कुरुतेऽनिलः||२१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रतिश्यायं च कासं च स्वरभेदमरोचकम्| | + | प्रतिश्यायं च कासं च स्वरभेदमरोचकम्| <br /> |
− | पार्श्वशूलं शिरःशूलं ज्वरमंसावमर्दनम्||२२|| | + | पार्श्वशूलं शिरःशूलं ज्वरमंसावमर्दनम्||२२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | अङ्गमर्दं मुहुश्छर्दिं वर्चोभेदं त्रिलक्षणम्| | + | अङ्गमर्दं मुहुश्छर्दिं वर्चोभेदं त्रिलक्षणम्| <br /> |
− | रूपाण्येकादशैतानि यक्ष्मा यैरुच्यते महान्||२३|| | + | रूपाण्येकादशैतानि यक्ष्मा यैरुच्यते महान्||२३||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | hrīmattvādvā ghr̥ṇitvādvā bhayādvā vēgamāgatam| | + | hrīmattvādvā ghr̥ṇitvādvā bhayādvā vēgamāgatam|<br /> |
− | vātamūtrapurīṣāṇāṁ nigr̥hṇāti yadā naraḥ||20|| | + | vātamūtrapurīṣāṇāṁ nigr̥hṇāti yadā naraḥ||20|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tadā vēgapratīghātāt kaphapittē samīrayan| | + | tadā vēgapratīghātāt kaphapittē samīrayan| <br /> |
− | ūrdhvaṁ tiryagadhaścaiva vikārān kurutē'nilaḥ||21|| | + | ūrdhvaṁ tiryagadhaścaiva vikārān kurutē'nilaḥ||21|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratiśyāyaṁ ca kāsaṁ ca svarabhēdamarōcakam| | + | pratiśyāyaṁ ca kāsaṁ ca svarabhēdamarōcakam| <br /> |
− | pārśvaśūlaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ jvaramaṁsāvamardanam||22|| | + | pārśvaśūlaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ jvaramaṁsāvamardanam||22|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | aṅgamardaṁ muhuśchardiṁ varcōbhēdaṁ trilakṣaṇam| | + | aṅgamardaṁ muhuśchardiṁ varcōbhēdaṁ trilakṣaṇam| <br /> |
− | rūpāṇyēkādaśaitāni yakṣmā yairucyatē mahān||23|| | + | rūpāṇyēkādaśaitāni yakṣmā yairucyatē mahān||23||<br /> |
| | | |
− | hrImattvAdvA ghRuNitvAdvA bhayAdvA vegamAgatam| | + | hrImattvAdvA ghRuNitvAdvA bhayAdvA vegamAgatam| <br /> |
− | vAtamUtrapurIShANAM nigRuhNAti yadA naraH||20|| | + | vAtamUtrapurIShANAM nigRuhNAti yadA naraH||20|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tadA vegapratIghAtAt kaphapitte samIrayan| | + | tadA vegapratIghAtAt kaphapitte samIrayan| <br /> |
− | UrdhvaM tiryagadhashcaiva vikArAn kurute~anilaH||21|| | + | UrdhvaM tiryagadhashcaiva vikArAn kurute~anilaH||21||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pratishyAyaM ca kAsaM ca svarabhedamarocakam| | + | pratishyAyaM ca kAsaM ca svarabhedamarocakam| <br /> |
− | pArshvashUlaM shiraHshUlaM jvaramaMsAvamardanam||22|| | + | pArshvashUlaM shiraHshUlaM jvaramaMsAvamardanam||22|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | a~ggamardaM muhushchardiM varcobhedaM trilakShaNam| | + | a~ggamardaM muhushchardiM varcobhedaM trilakShaNam| <br /> |
− | rUpANyekAdashaitAni yakShmA yairucyate mahAn||23|| | + | rUpANyekAdashaitAni yakShmA yairucyate mahAn||23||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| When due to bashfulness or disgust or fear one suppresses the impelling urge to pass flatus, urine and/or feces, ''vayu'', due to the obstruction of such urges, propels ''kapha'' and ''pitta'' upwards, obliquely and downwards within the body, causing the disorders having symptoms of all three ''doshas'' such as coryza, cough, hoarseness of voice, anorexia, pain in flank, headache, fever, pain in shoulders, bodyache, frequent vomiting and diarrhea. These are the eleven symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' caused due to suppression of urges. [20-23] | | When due to bashfulness or disgust or fear one suppresses the impelling urge to pass flatus, urine and/or feces, ''vayu'', due to the obstruction of such urges, propels ''kapha'' and ''pitta'' upwards, obliquely and downwards within the body, causing the disorders having symptoms of all three ''doshas'' such as coryza, cough, hoarseness of voice, anorexia, pain in flank, headache, fever, pain in shoulders, bodyache, frequent vomiting and diarrhea. These are the eleven symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' caused due to suppression of urges. [20-23] |
| | | |
| ===== 3. ''Kshayaja rajayakshma'' (due to depletion of tissues) ===== | | ===== 3. ''Kshayaja rajayakshma'' (due to depletion of tissues) ===== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | ईर्ष्योत्कण्ठाभयत्रासक्रोधशोकातिकर्शनात्| | + | ईर्ष्योत्कण्ठाभयत्रासक्रोधशोकातिकर्शनात्| <br /> |
− | अतिव्यवायानशनाच्छुक्रमोजश्च हीयते||२४|| | + | अतिव्यवायानशनाच्छुक्रमोजश्च हीयते||२४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ततः स्नेहक्षयाद्वायुर्वृद्धो दोषावुदीरयन्| | + | ततः स्नेहक्षयाद्वायुर्वृद्धो दोषावुदीरयन्| <br /> |
− | प्रतिश्यायं ज्वरं कासमङ्गमर्दं शिरोरुजम्||२५|| | + | प्रतिश्यायं ज्वरं कासमङ्गमर्दं शिरोरुजम्||२५||<br /> |
| | | |
− | श्वासं विड्भेदमरुचिं पार्श्वशूलं स्वरक्षयम्| | + | श्वासं विड्भेदमरुचिं पार्श्वशूलं स्वरक्षयम्| <br /> |
− | करोति चांससन्तापमेकादशगदानिमान् [१] ||२६|| | + | करोति चांससन्तापमेकादशगदानिमान् [१] ||२६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | लिङ्गान्यावेदयन्त्येतान्येकादश महागदम्| | + | लिङ्गान्यावेदयन्त्येतान्येकादश महागदम्| <br /> |
− | सम्प्राप्तं राजयक्ष्माणं क्षयात् प्राणक्षयप्रदम्||२७|| | + | सम्प्राप्तं राजयक्ष्माणं क्षयात् प्राणक्षयप्रदम्||२७||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | īrṣyōtkaṇṭhābhayatrāsakrōdhaśōkātikarśanāt| | + | īrṣyōtkaṇṭhābhayatrāsakrōdhaśōkātikarśanāt| <br /> |
− | ativyavāyānaśanācchukramōjaśca hīyatē||24|| | + | ativyavāyānaśanācchukramōjaśca hīyatē||24|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tataḥ snēhakṣayādvāyurvr̥ddhō dōṣāvudīrayan| | + | tataḥ snēhakṣayādvāyurvr̥ddhō dōṣāvudīrayan| <br /> |
− | pratiśyāyaṁ jvaraṁ kāsamaṅgamardaṁ śirōrujam||25|| | + | pratiśyāyaṁ jvaraṁ kāsamaṅgamardaṁ śirōrujam||25|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śvāsaṁ viḍbhēdamaruciṁ pārśvaśūlaṁ svarakṣayam| | + | śvāsaṁ viḍbhēdamaruciṁ pārśvaśūlaṁ svarakṣayam| <br /> |
− | karōti cāṁsasantāpamēkādaśagadānimān [1] ||26|| | + | karōti cāṁsasantāpamēkādaśagadānimān [1] ||26|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | liṅgānyāvēdayantyētānyēkādaśa mahāgadam| | + | liṅgānyāvēdayantyētānyēkādaśa mahāgadam| <br /> |
− | samprāptaṁ rājayakṣmāṇaṁ kṣayāt prāṇakṣayapradam||27|| | + | samprāptaṁ rājayakṣmāṇaṁ kṣayāt prāṇakṣayapradam||27||<br /> |
| | | |
− | IrShyotkaNThAbhayatrAsakrodhashokAtikarshanAt| | + | IrShyotkaNThAbhayatrAsakrodhashokAtikarshanAt| <br /> |
− | ativyavAyAnashanAcchukramojashca hIyate||24|| | + | ativyavAyAnashanAcchukramojashca hIyate||24|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tataH snehakShayAdvAyurvRuddho doShAvudIrayan| | + | tataH snehakShayAdvAyurvRuddho doShAvudIrayan| <br /> |
− | pratishyAyaM jvaraM kAsama~ggamardaM shirorujam||25|| | + | pratishyAyaM jvaraM kAsama~ggamardaM shirorujam||25|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shvAsaM viDbhedamaruciM pArshvashUlaM svarakShayam| | + | shvAsaM viDbhedamaruciM pArshvashUlaM svarakShayam| <br /> |
− | karoti cAMsasantApamekAdashagadAnimAn [1] ||26|| | + | karoti cAMsasantApamekAdashagadAnimAn [1] ||26|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | li~ggAnyAvedayantyetAnyekAdasha mahAgadam| | + | li~ggAnyAvedayantyetAnyekAdasha mahAgadam| <br /> |
− | samprAptaM rAjayakShmANaM kShayAt prANakShayapradam||27|| | + | samprAptaM rAjayakShmANaM kShayAt prANakShayapradam||27||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Excessive envy, eagerness, fever, terror, anger, grief, excessive indulgence in sexual intercourse, and fasting leads to depletion of ''shukra'' and ''ojas''. This, in turn, due to loss of unctuousness, provokes ''vata'' which further aggravates the other two ''doshas'' and causes eleven symptoms such as—coryza, fever, cough, bodyache, headache, dyspnea, diarrhea, anorexia, pain in flanks, feeble voice and feeling of warmth in shoulders. These eleven symptoms indicate the advent of the great disease ''rajayakshma'' due to wasting. [24-27] | | Excessive envy, eagerness, fever, terror, anger, grief, excessive indulgence in sexual intercourse, and fasting leads to depletion of ''shukra'' and ''ojas''. This, in turn, due to loss of unctuousness, provokes ''vata'' which further aggravates the other two ''doshas'' and causes eleven symptoms such as—coryza, fever, cough, bodyache, headache, dyspnea, diarrhea, anorexia, pain in flanks, feeble voice and feeling of warmth in shoulders. These eleven symptoms indicate the advent of the great disease ''rajayakshma'' due to wasting. [24-27] |
| | | |
| ===== 4. ''Vishamashanaja rajayakshma'' (due to irregular dietary habits) ===== | | ===== 4. ''Vishamashanaja rajayakshma'' (due to irregular dietary habits) ===== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | विविधान्यन्नपानानि वैषम्येण समश्नतः| | + | विविधान्यन्नपानानि वैषम्येण समश्नतः| <br /> |
− | जनयन्त्यामयान् घोरान्विषमान्मारुतादयः||२८|| | + | जनयन्त्यामयान् घोरान्विषमान्मारुतादयः||२८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्रोतांसि रुधिरादीनां वैषम्याद्विषमं गताः| | + | स्रोतांसि रुधिरादीनां वैषम्याद्विषमं गताः| <br /> |
− | रुद्ध्वा रोगाय कल्पन्ते पुष्यन्ति च न धातवः||२९|| | + | रुद्ध्वा रोगाय कल्पन्ते पुष्यन्ति च न धातवः||२९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रतिश्यायं प्रसेकं च कासं छर्दिमरोचकम्| | + | प्रतिश्यायं प्रसेकं च कासं छर्दिमरोचकम्| <br /> |
− | ज्वरमंसाभितापं च छर्दनं रुधिरस्य च||३०|| | + | ज्वरमंसाभितापं च छर्दनं रुधिरस्य च||३०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पार्श्वशूलं शिरःशूलं स्वरभेदमथापि च| | + | पार्श्वशूलं शिरःशूलं स्वरभेदमथापि च| <br /> |
− | कफपित्तानिलकृतं लिङ्गं विद्याद्यथाक्रमम्||३१|| | + | कफपित्तानिलकृतं लिङ्गं विद्याद्यथाक्रमम्||३१||<br /> |
| | | |
− | इति व्याधिसमूहस्य रोगराजस्य हेतुजम्| | + | इति व्याधिसमूहस्य रोगराजस्य हेतुजम्| <br /> |
− | रूपमेकादशविधं हेतुश्चोक्तश्चतुर्विधः||३२|| | + | रूपमेकादशविधं हेतुश्चोक्तश्चतुर्विधः||३२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | vividhānyannapānāni vaiṣamyēṇa samaśnataḥ| | + | vividhānyannapānāni vaiṣamyēṇa samaśnataḥ| <br /> |
− | janayantyāmayān ghōrānviṣamānmārutādayaḥ||28|| | + | janayantyāmayān ghōrānviṣamānmārutādayaḥ||28|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srōtāṁsi rudhirādīnāṁ vaiṣamyādviṣamaṁ gatāḥ| | + | srōtāṁsi rudhirādīnāṁ vaiṣamyādviṣamaṁ gatāḥ| <br /> |
− | ruddhvā rōgāya kalpantē puṣyanti ca na dhātavaḥ||29|| | + | ruddhvā rōgāya kalpantē puṣyanti ca na dhātavaḥ||29|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratiśyāyaṁ prasēkaṁ ca kāsaṁ chardimarōcakam| | + | pratiśyāyaṁ prasēkaṁ ca kāsaṁ chardimarōcakam| <br /> |
− | jvaramaṁsābhitāpaṁ ca chardanaṁ rudhirasya ca||30|| | + | jvaramaṁsābhitāpaṁ ca chardanaṁ rudhirasya ca||30|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pārśvaśūlaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ svarabhēdamathāpi ca| | + | pārśvaśūlaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ svarabhēdamathāpi ca| <br /> |
− | kaphapittānilakr̥taṁ liṅgaṁ vidyādyathākramam||31|| | + | kaphapittānilakr̥taṁ liṅgaṁ vidyādyathākramam||31|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti vyādhisamūhasya rōgarājasya [1] hētujam| | + | iti vyādhisamūhasya rōgarājasya [1] hētujam| <br /> |
− | rūpamēkādaśavidhaṁ hētuścōktaścaturvidhaḥ||32|| | + | rūpamēkādaśavidhaṁ hētuścōktaścaturvidhaḥ||32||<br /> |
| | | |
− | vividhAnyannapAnAni vaiShamyeNa samashnataH| | + | vividhAnyannapAnAni vaiShamyeNa samashnataH| <br /> |
− | janayantyAmayAn ghorAnviShamAnmArutAdayaH||28|| | + | janayantyAmayAn ghorAnviShamAnmArutAdayaH||28|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srotAMsi rudhirAdInAM vaiShamyAdviShamaM gatAH| | + | srotAMsi rudhirAdInAM vaiShamyAdviShamaM gatAH| <br /> |
− | ruddhvA rogAya kalpante puShyanti ca na dhAtavaH||29|| | + | ruddhvA rogAya kalpante puShyanti ca na dhAtavaH||29|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratishyAyaM prasekaM ca kAsaM chardimarocakam| | + | pratishyAyaM prasekaM ca kAsaM chardimarocakam| <br /> |
− | jvaramaMsAbhitApaM ca chardanaM rudhirasya ca||30|| | + | jvaramaMsAbhitApaM ca chardanaM rudhirasya ca||30|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pArshvashUlaM shiraHshUlaM svarabhedamathApi ca| | + | pArshvashUlaM shiraHshUlaM svarabhedamathApi ca| <br /> |
− | kaphapittAnilakRutaM li~ggaM vidyAdyathAkramam||31|| | + | kaphapittAnilakRutaM li~ggaM vidyAdyathAkramam||31|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti vyAdhisamUhasya rogarAjasya [1] hetujam| | + | iti vyAdhisamUhasya rogarAjasya [1] hetujam| <br /> |
− | rUpamekAdashavidhaM hetushcoktashcaturvidhaH||32|| | + | rUpamekAdashavidhaM hetushcoktashcaturvidhaH||32||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Irregular intake of dietary articles, or irregular dietary habits lead to vitiation of ''doshas'', causing severe ''amavisha'' disorders. These vitiated ''doshas'' obstruct the channels of blood etc. leading to weaning away of ''dhatus'' and causing the 11 symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' caused due to irregular dietary habit: | | Irregular intake of dietary articles, or irregular dietary habits lead to vitiation of ''doshas'', causing severe ''amavisha'' disorders. These vitiated ''doshas'' obstruct the channels of blood etc. leading to weaning away of ''dhatus'' and causing the 11 symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' caused due to irregular dietary habit: |
Line 357: |
Line 388: |
| | | |
| ==== Premonitory signs ==== | | ==== Premonitory signs ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | पूर्वरूपं प्रतिश्यायो दौर्बल्यं दोषदर्शनम्| | + | पूर्वरूपं प्रतिश्यायो दौर्बल्यं दोषदर्शनम्| <br /> |
− | अदोषेष्वपि भावेषु काये बीभत्सदर्शनम्||३३|| | + | अदोषेष्वपि भावेषु काये बीभत्सदर्शनम्||३३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | घृणित्वमश्नतश्चापि बलमांसपरिक्षयः| | + | घृणित्वमश्नतश्चापि बलमांसपरिक्षयः| <br /> |
− | स्त्रीमद्यमांसप्रियता प्रियता चावगुण्ठने||३४|| | + | स्त्रीमद्यमांसप्रियता प्रियता चावगुण्ठने||३४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मक्षिकाघुणकेशानां तृणानां पतनानि च| | + | मक्षिकाघुणकेशानां तृणानां पतनानि च| <br /> |
− | प्रायोऽन्नपाने केशानां नखानां चाभिवर्धनम्||३५|| | + | प्रायोऽन्नपाने केशानां नखानां चाभिवर्धनम्||३५||<br /> |
| | | |
− | पतत्रिभिः पतङ्गैश्च श्वापदैश्चाभिधर्षणम्| | + | पतत्रिभिः पतङ्गैश्च श्वापदैश्चाभिधर्षणम्| <br /> |
− | स्वप्ने केशास्थिराशीनां भस्मनश्चाधिरोहणम्||३६|| | + | स्वप्ने केशास्थिराशीनां भस्मनश्चाधिरोहणम्||३६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जलाशयानां शैलानां वनानां ज्योतिषामपि| | + | जलाशयानां शैलानां वनानां ज्योतिषामपि| <br /> |
− | शुष्यतां क्षीयमाणानां पततां यच्च दर्शनम्||३७|| | + | शुष्यतां क्षीयमाणानां पततां यच्च दर्शनम्||३७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्राग्रूपं बहुरूपस्य तज्ज्ञेयं राजयक्ष्मणः|३८| | + | प्राग्रूपं बहुरूपस्य तज्ज्ञेयं राजयक्ष्मणः|३८| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | pūrvarūpaṁ pratiśyāyō daurbalyaṁ dōṣadarśanam| | + | pūrvarūpaṁ pratiśyāyō daurbalyaṁ dōṣadarśanam| <br /> |
− | adōṣēṣvapi bhāvēṣu kāyē bībhatsadarśanam||33|| | + | adōṣēṣvapi bhāvēṣu kāyē bībhatsadarśanam||33|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ghr̥ṇitvamaśnataścāpi balamāṁsaparikṣayaḥ| | + | ghr̥ṇitvamaśnataścāpi balamāṁsaparikṣayaḥ| <br /> |
− | strīmadyamāṁsapriyatā priyatā cāvaguṇṭhanē||34|| | + | strīmadyamāṁsapriyatā priyatā cāvaguṇṭhanē||34|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | makṣikāghuṇakēśānāṁ tr̥ṇānāṁ patanāni ca| | + | makṣikāghuṇakēśānāṁ tr̥ṇānāṁ patanāni ca| <br /> |
− | prāyō'nnapānē kēśānāṁ nakhānāṁ cābhivardhanam||35|| | + | prāyō'nnapānē kēśānāṁ nakhānāṁ cābhivardhanam||35|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | patatribhiḥ pataṅgaiśca śvāpadaiścābhidharṣaṇam| | + | patatribhiḥ pataṅgaiśca śvāpadaiścābhidharṣaṇam| <br /> |
− | svapnē kēśāsthirāśīnāṁ bhasmanaścādhirōhaṇam||36|| | + | svapnē kēśāsthirāśīnāṁ bhasmanaścādhirōhaṇam||36|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jalāśayānāṁ śailānāṁ vanānāṁ jyōtiṣāmapi| | + | jalāśayānāṁ śailānāṁ vanānāṁ jyōtiṣāmapi| <br /> |
− | śuṣyatāṁ kṣīyamāṇānāṁ patatāṁ yacca darśanam||37|| | + | śuṣyatāṁ kṣīyamāṇānāṁ patatāṁ yacca darśanam||37|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prāgrūpaṁ bahurūpasya tajjñēyaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ|38| | + | prāgrūpaṁ bahurūpasya tajjñēyaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ|38| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pUrvarUpaM pratishyAyo daurbalyaM doShadarshanam| | + | pUrvarUpaM pratishyAyo daurbalyaM doShadarshanam| <br /> |
− | adoSheShvapi bhAveShu kAye bIbhatsadarshanam||33|| | + | adoSheShvapi bhAveShu kAye bIbhatsadarshanam||33|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ghRuNitvamashnatashcApi balamAMsaparikShayaH| | + | ghRuNitvamashnatashcApi balamAMsaparikShayaH| <br /> |
− | strImadyamAMsapriyatA priyatA cAvaguNThane||34|| | + | strImadyamAMsapriyatA priyatA cAvaguNThane||34|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | makShikAghuNakeshAnAM tRuNAnAM patanAni ca| | + | makShikAghuNakeshAnAM tRuNAnAM patanAni ca| <br /> |
− | prAyo~annapAne keshAnAM nakhAnAM cAbhivardhanam||35|| | + | prAyo~annapAne keshAnAM nakhAnAM cAbhivardhanam||35|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | patatribhiH pata~ggaishca shvApadaishcAbhidharShaNam| | + | patatribhiH pata~ggaishca shvApadaishcAbhidharShaNam| <br /> |
− | svapne keshAsthirAshInAM bhasmanashcAdhirohaNam||36|| | + | svapne keshAsthirAshInAM bhasmanashcAdhirohaNam||36|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jalAshayAnAM shailAnAM vanAnAM jyotiShAmapi| | + | jalAshayAnAM shailAnAM vanAnAM jyotiShAmapi| <br /> |
− | shuShyatAM kShIyamANAnAM patatAM yacca darshanam||37|| | + | shuShyatAM kShIyamANAnAM patatAM yacca darshanam||37|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prAgrUpaM bahurUpasya tajj~jeyaM rAjayakShmaNaH|38| | + | prAgrUpaM bahurUpasya tajj~jeyaM rAjayakShmaNaH|38| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The premonitory symptoms (of ''rajayakshma'') are coryza, debility, nitpicking (or an inclination to find faults where there is no reason to), morbid appearances on the body; feeling of disgust, loss of strength and flesh (inspite of consuming adequate food), craving for women, wine and meat, desire to be always covered by something (feeling of cold), imagined feeling of one’s food being infested with insects, flies, hair,, rapid growth of hairs and fingernails, imagined feeling of being attacked by birds, wasps, and animals, seeing dreams of climbing heaps of hair, bones, and ashes, and dreaming of dried or withered ponds, mountains, and forests- these are to be known as premonitory symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' of various types.[33-38] | | The premonitory symptoms (of ''rajayakshma'') are coryza, debility, nitpicking (or an inclination to find faults where there is no reason to), morbid appearances on the body; feeling of disgust, loss of strength and flesh (inspite of consuming adequate food), craving for women, wine and meat, desire to be always covered by something (feeling of cold), imagined feeling of one’s food being infested with insects, flies, hair,, rapid growth of hairs and fingernails, imagined feeling of being attacked by birds, wasps, and animals, seeing dreams of climbing heaps of hair, bones, and ashes, and dreaming of dried or withered ponds, mountains, and forests- these are to be known as premonitory symptoms of ''rajayakshma'' of various types.[33-38] |
| | | |
| ==== Pathogenesis and clinical features ==== | | ==== Pathogenesis and clinical features ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | रूपं त्वस्य यथोद्देशं निर्देक्ष्यामि [१] सभेषजम्||३८|| | + | रूपं त्वस्य यथोद्देशं निर्देक्ष्यामि [१] सभेषजम्||३८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यथास्वेनोष्मणा पाकं शारीरा यान्ति धातवः| | + | यथास्वेनोष्मणा पाकं शारीरा यान्ति धातवः| <br /> |
− | स्रोतसा च यथास्वेन धातुः पुष्यति धातुतः||३९|| | + | स्रोतसा च यथास्वेन धातुः पुष्यति धातुतः||३९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्रोतसां सन्निरोधाच्च रक्तादीनां च सङ्क्षयात्| | + | स्रोतसां सन्निरोधाच्च रक्तादीनां च सङ्क्षयात्| <br /> |
− | धातूष्मणां चापचयाद्राजयक्ष्मा प्रवर्तते||४०|| | + | धातूष्मणां चापचयाद्राजयक्ष्मा प्रवर्तते||४०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तस्मिन् काले पचत्यग्निर्यदन्नं कोष्ठसंश्रितम्| | + | तस्मिन् काले पचत्यग्निर्यदन्नं कोष्ठसंश्रितम्| <br /> |
− | मलीभवति तत् प्रायः कल्पते किञ्चिदोजसे||४१|| | + | मलीभवति तत् प्रायः कल्पते किञ्चिदोजसे||४१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तस्मात् पुरीषं संरक्ष्यं विशेषाद्राजयक्ष्मिणः| | + | तस्मात् पुरीषं संरक्ष्यं विशेषाद्राजयक्ष्मिणः| <br /> |
− | सर्वधातुक्षयार्तस्य बलं तस्य हि विड्बलम्||४२|| | + | सर्वधातुक्षयार्तस्य बलं तस्य हि विड्बलम्||४२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | रसः स्रोतःसु रुद्धेषु स्वस्थानस्थो विदह्यते [२] | | + | रसः स्रोतःसु रुद्धेषु स्वस्थानस्थो विदह्यते [२] | <br /> |
− | स ऊर्ध्वं कासवेगेन बहुरूपः प्रवर्तते||४३|| | + | स ऊर्ध्वं कासवेगेन बहुरूपः प्रवर्तते||४३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जायन्ते व्याधयश्चातः षडेकादश वा पुनः| | + | जायन्ते व्याधयश्चातः षडेकादश वा पुनः| <br /> |
− | येषां सङ्घातयोगेन राजयक्ष्मेति कथ्यते||४४|| | + | येषां सङ्घातयोगेन राजयक्ष्मेति कथ्यते||४४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | कासोंऽसतापो वैस्वर्यं ज्वरः पार्श्वशिरोरुजा| | + | कासोंऽसतापो वैस्वर्यं ज्वरः पार्श्वशिरोरुजा| <br /> |
− | छर्दनं रक्तकफयोः श्वासवर्चोगदोऽरुचिः||४५|| | + | छर्दनं रक्तकफयोः श्वासवर्चोगदोऽरुचिः||४५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | रूपाण्येकादशैतानि यक्ष्मणः षडिमानि वा| | + | रूपाण्येकादशैतानि यक्ष्मणः षडिमानि वा| <br /> |
− | कासो ज्वरः पार्श्वशूलं स्वरवर्चोगदोऽरुचिः||४६|| | + | कासो ज्वरः पार्श्वशूलं स्वरवर्चोगदोऽरुचिः||४६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सर्वैरर्धैस्त्रिभिर्वाऽपि लिङ्गैर्मांसबलक्षये| | + | सर्वैरर्धैस्त्रिभिर्वाऽपि लिङ्गैर्मांसबलक्षये| <br /> |
− | युक्तो वर्ज्यश्चिकित्स्यस्तु सर्वरूपोऽप्यतोऽन्यथा||४७|| | + | युक्तो वर्ज्यश्चिकित्स्यस्तु सर्वरूपोऽप्यतोऽन्यथा||४७|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | rūpaṁ tvasya yathōddēśaṁ nirdēkṣyāmi [1] sabhēṣajam||38|| | + | rūpaṁ tvasya yathōddēśaṁ nirdēkṣyāmi [1] sabhēṣajam||38|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yathāsvēnōṣmaṇā pākaṁ śārīrā yānti dhātavaḥ| | + | yathāsvēnōṣmaṇā pākaṁ śārīrā yānti dhātavaḥ| <br /> |
− | srōtasā ca yathāsvēna dhātuḥ puṣyati dhātutaḥ||39|| | + | srōtasā ca yathāsvēna dhātuḥ puṣyati dhātutaḥ||39|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srōtasāṁ sannirōdhācca raktādīnāṁ ca saṅkṣayāt| | + | srōtasāṁ sannirōdhācca raktādīnāṁ ca saṅkṣayāt| <br /> |
− | dhātūṣmaṇāṁ cāpacayādrājayakṣmā pravartatē||40|| | + | dhātūṣmaṇāṁ cāpacayādrājayakṣmā pravartatē||40|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasmin kālē pacatyagniryadannaṁ kōṣṭhasaṁśritam| | + | tasmin kālē pacatyagniryadannaṁ kōṣṭhasaṁśritam| <br /> |
− | malībhavati tat prāyaḥ kalpatē kiñcidōjasē||41|| | + | malībhavati tat prāyaḥ kalpatē kiñcidōjasē||41|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasmāt purīṣaṁ saṁrakṣyaṁ viśēṣādrājayakṣmiṇaḥ| | + | tasmāt purīṣaṁ saṁrakṣyaṁ viśēṣādrājayakṣmiṇaḥ| <br /> |
− | sarvadhātukṣayārtasya balaṁ tasya hi viḍbalam||42|| | + | sarvadhātukṣayārtasya balaṁ tasya hi viḍbalam||42|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rasaḥ srōtaḥsu ruddhēṣu svasthānasthō vidahyatē [2] | | + | rasaḥ srōtaḥsu ruddhēṣu svasthānasthō vidahyatē [2] | <br /> |
− | sa ūrdhvaṁ kāsavēgēna bahurūpaḥ pravartatē||43|| | + | sa ūrdhvaṁ kāsavēgēna bahurūpaḥ pravartatē||43|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jāyantē vyādhayaścātaḥ ṣaḍēkādaśa vā punaḥ| | + | jāyantē vyādhayaścātaḥ ṣaḍēkādaśa vā punaḥ| <br /> |
− | yēṣāṁ saṅghātayōgēna rājayakṣmēti kathyatē||44|| | + | yēṣāṁ saṅghātayōgēna rājayakṣmēti kathyatē||44|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kāsōṁ'satāpō vaisvaryaṁ jvaraḥ pārśvaśirōrujā| | + | kāsōṁ'satāpō vaisvaryaṁ jvaraḥ pārśvaśirōrujā| <br /> |
− | chardanaṁ raktakaphayōḥ śvāsavarcōgadō'ruciḥ||45|| | + | chardanaṁ raktakaphayōḥ śvāsavarcōgadō'ruciḥ||45|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rūpāṇyēkādaśaitāni yakṣmaṇaḥ ṣaḍimāni vā| | + | rūpāṇyēkādaśaitāni yakṣmaṇaḥ ṣaḍimāni vā| <br /> |
− | kāsō jvaraḥ pārśvaśūlaṁ svaravarcōgadō'ruciḥ||46|| | + | kāsō jvaraḥ pārśvaśūlaṁ svaravarcōgadō'ruciḥ||46|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sarvairardhaistribhirvā'pi liṅgairmāṁsabalakṣayē| | + | sarvairardhaistribhirvā'pi liṅgairmāṁsabalakṣayē| <br /> |
− | yuktō varjyaścikitsyastu sarvarūpō'pyatō'nyathā||47|| | + | yuktō varjyaścikitsyastu sarvarūpō'pyatō'nyathā||47|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rUpaM tvasya yathoddeshaM nirdekShyAmi [1] sabheShajam||38|| | + | rUpaM tvasya yathoddeshaM nirdekShyAmi [1] sabheShajam||38|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yathAsvenoShmaNA pAkaM shArIrA yAnti dhAtavaH| | + | yathAsvenoShmaNA pAkaM shArIrA yAnti dhAtavaH| <br /> |
− | srotasA ca yathAsvena dhAtuH puShyati dhAtutaH||39|| | + | srotasA ca yathAsvena dhAtuH puShyati dhAtutaH||39|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srotasAM sannirodhAcca raktAdInAM ca sa~gkShayAt| | + | srotasAM sannirodhAcca raktAdInAM ca sa~gkShayAt| <br /> |
− | dhAtUShmaNAM cApacayAdrAjayakShmA pravartate||40|| | + | dhAtUShmaNAM cApacayAdrAjayakShmA pravartate||40|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasmin kAle pacatyagniryadannaM koShThasaMshritam| | + | tasmin kAle pacatyagniryadannaM koShThasaMshritam| <br /> |
− | malIbhavati tat prAyaH kalpate ki~jcidojase||41|| | + | malIbhavati tat prAyaH kalpate ki~jcidojase||41|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasmAt purIShaM saMrakShyaM visheShAdrAjayakShmiNaH| | + | tasmAt purIShaM saMrakShyaM visheShAdrAjayakShmiNaH| <br /> |
− | sarvadhAtukShayArtasya balaM tasya hi viDbalam||42|| | + | sarvadhAtukShayArtasya balaM tasya hi viDbalam||42|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rasaH srotaHsu ruddheShu svasthAnastho vidahyate [2] | | + | rasaH srotaHsu ruddheShu svasthAnastho vidahyate [2] | <br /> |
− | sa UrdhvaM kAsavegena bahurUpaH pravartate||43|| | + | sa UrdhvaM kAsavegena bahurUpaH pravartate||43|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jAyante vyAdhayashcAtaH ShaDekAdasha vA punaH| | + | jAyante vyAdhayashcAtaH ShaDekAdasha vA punaH| <br /> |
− | yeShAM sa~gghAtayogena rAjayakShmeti kathyate||44|| | + | yeShAM sa~gghAtayogena rAjayakShmeti kathyate||44|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kAsoM~asatApo vaisvaryaM jvaraH pArshvashirorujA| | + | kAsoM~asatApo vaisvaryaM jvaraH pArshvashirorujA| <br /> |
− | chardanaM raktakaphayoH shvAsavarcogado~aruciH||45|| | + | chardanaM raktakaphayoH shvAsavarcogado~aruciH||45|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | rUpANyekAdashaitAni yakShmaNaH ShaDimAni vA| | + | rUpANyekAdashaitAni yakShmaNaH ShaDimAni vA| <br /> |
− | kAso jvaraH pArshvashUlaM svaravarcogado~aruciH||46|| | + | kAso jvaraH pArshvashUlaM svaravarcogado~aruciH||46|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sarvairardhaistribhirvA~api li~ggairmAMsabalakShaye| | + | sarvairardhaistribhirvA~api li~ggairmAMsabalakShaye| <br /> |
− | yukto varjyashcikitsyastu sarvarUpo~apyato~anyathA||47|| | + | yukto varjyashcikitsyastu sarvarUpo~apyato~anyathA||47|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Now we will describe the pathogenesis, clinical features and management in brief. | | Now we will describe the pathogenesis, clinical features and management in brief. |
Line 507: |
Line 544: |
| | | |
| ==== Signs of ''pratishyaya'' ==== | | ==== Signs of ''pratishyaya'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | घ्राणमूले स्थितः श्लेष्मा रुधिरं पित्तमेव वा| | + | घ्राणमूले स्थितः श्लेष्मा रुधिरं पित्तमेव वा| <br /> |
− | मारुताध्मातशिरसो मारुतं श्यायते प्रति||४८|| | + | मारुताध्मातशिरसो मारुतं श्यायते प्रति||४८||<br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रतिश्यायस्ततो घोरो जायते देहकर्शनः| | + | प्रतिश्यायस्ततो घोरो जायते देहकर्शनः| <br /> |
− | तस्य रूपं शिरःशूलं गौरवं घ्राणविप्लवः||४९|| | + | तस्य रूपं शिरःशूलं गौरवं घ्राणविप्लवः||४९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ज्वरः कासः कफोत्क्लेशः स्वरभेदोऽरुचिः क्लमः| | + | ज्वरः कासः कफोत्क्लेशः स्वरभेदोऽरुचिः क्लमः| <br /> |
− | इन्द्रियाणामसामर्थ्यं यक्ष्मा चातः [१] प्रजायते||५०|| | + | इन्द्रियाणामसामर्थ्यं यक्ष्मा चातः [१] प्रजायते||५०||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | ghrāṇamūlē sthitaḥ ślēṣmā rudhiraṁ pittamēva vā| | + | ghrāṇamūlē sthitaḥ ślēṣmā rudhiraṁ pittamēva vā| <br /> |
− | mārutādhmātaśirasō mārutaṁ śyāyatē prati||48|| | + | mārutādhmātaśirasō mārutaṁ śyāyatē prati||48||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pratiśyāyastatō ghōrō jāyatē dēhakarśanaḥ| | + | pratiśyāyastatō ghōrō jāyatē dēhakarśanaḥ| <br /> |
− | tasya rūpaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ gauravaṁ ghrāṇaviplavaḥ||49|| | + | tasya rūpaṁ śiraḥśūlaṁ gauravaṁ ghrāṇaviplavaḥ||49|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jvaraḥ kāsaḥ kaphōtklēśaḥ svarabhēdō'ruciḥ klamaḥ| | + | jvaraḥ kāsaḥ kaphōtklēśaḥ svarabhēdō'ruciḥ klamaḥ| <br /> |
− | indriyāṇāmasāmarthyaṁ yakṣmā cātaḥ [1] prajāyatē||50|| | + | indriyāṇāmasāmarthyaṁ yakṣmā cātaḥ [1] prajāyatē||50||<br /> |
| | | |
− | ghrANamUle sthitaH shleShmA rudhiraM pittameva vA| | + | ghrANamUle sthitaH shleShmA rudhiraM pittameva vA| <br /> |
− | mArutAdhmAtashiraso mArutaM shyAyate prati||48|| | + | mArutAdhmAtashiraso mArutaM shyAyate prati||48|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratishyAyastato ghoro jAyate dehakarshanaH| | + | pratishyAyastato ghoro jAyate dehakarshanaH| <br /> |
− | tasya rUpaM shiraHshUlaM gauravaM ghrANaviplavaH||49|| | + | tasya rUpaM shiraHshUlaM gauravaM ghrANaviplavaH||49|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jvaraH kAsaH kaphotkleshaH svarabhedo~aruciH klamaH| | + | jvaraH kAsaH kaphotkleshaH svarabhedo~aruciH klamaH| <br /> |
− | indriyANAmasAmarthyaM yakShmA cAtaH [1] prajAyate||50|| | + | indriyANAmasAmarthyaM yakShmA cAtaH [1] prajAyate||50||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The ''kapha'' or blood or ''pitta'' located at the root of the nasal passage cause nasal catarrh in the patients whose head is afflicted with ''vayu''. This results in severe ''pratishyaya'' (coryza) affecting entire body of the patient, This leads to emaciation of the body; its signs and symptoms are headache, heaviness in the head, loss of smell, fever, cough, increase of mucous secretion, change of voice, anorexia fatigue and asthenia of the senses and then ''rajayakshma'' manifests. [48-50] | | The ''kapha'' or blood or ''pitta'' located at the root of the nasal passage cause nasal catarrh in the patients whose head is afflicted with ''vayu''. This results in severe ''pratishyaya'' (coryza) affecting entire body of the patient, This leads to emaciation of the body; its signs and symptoms are headache, heaviness in the head, loss of smell, fever, cough, increase of mucous secretion, change of voice, anorexia fatigue and asthenia of the senses and then ''rajayakshma'' manifests. [48-50] |
| | | |
| ==== Appearance of sputum ==== | | ==== Appearance of sputum ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | पिच्छिलं बहलं विस्रं हरितं श्वेतपीतकम्| | + | पिच्छिलं बहलं विस्रं हरितं श्वेतपीतकम्| <br /> |
− | कासमानो रसं यक्ष्मी निष्ठीवति [१] कफानुगम्||५१|| | + | कासमानो रसं यक्ष्मी निष्ठीवति [१] कफानुगम्||५१||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | picchilaṁ bahalaṁ visraṁ haritaṁ śvētapītakam| | + | picchilaṁ bahalaṁ visraṁ haritaṁ śvētapītakam| <br /> |
− | kāsamānō rasaṁ yakṣmī niṣṭhīvati [1] kaphānugam||51|| | + | kāsamānō rasaṁ yakṣmī niṣṭhīvati [1] kaphānugam||51||<br /> |
| | | |
− | picchilaM bahalaM visraM haritaM shvetapItakam| | + | picchilaM bahalaM visraM haritaM shvetapItakam| <br /> |
− | kAsamAno rasaM yakShmI niShThIvati [1] kaphAnugam||51|| | + | kAsamAno rasaM yakShmI niShThIvati [1] kaphAnugam||51||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Expectorates resulting from coughing (when afflicted with ''rajayakshma'') contain slimy, thick, putrid, greenish or white-yellowish matter along with ''kapha''. [51] | | Expectorates resulting from coughing (when afflicted with ''rajayakshma'') contain slimy, thick, putrid, greenish or white-yellowish matter along with ''kapha''. [51] |
| | | |
| ==== Clinical features of ''rajayakshma'' ==== | | ==== Clinical features of ''rajayakshma'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | अंसपार्श्वाभितापश्च सन्तापः करपादयोः| | + | अंसपार्श्वाभितापश्च सन्तापः करपादयोः| <br /> |
− | ज्वरः सर्वाङ्गगश्चेति लक्षणं राजयक्ष्मणः||५२|| | + | ज्वरः सर्वाङ्गगश्चेति लक्षणं राजयक्ष्मणः||५२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | aṁsapārśvābhitāpaśca santāpaḥ karapādayōḥ| | + | aṁsapārśvābhitāpaśca santāpaḥ karapādayōḥ| <br /> |
− | jvaraḥ sarvāṅgagaścēti lakṣaṇaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ||52|| | + | jvaraḥ sarvāṅgagaścēti lakṣaṇaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ||52||<br /> |
| | | |
− | aMsapArshvAbhitApashca santApaH [1] karapAdayoH| | + | aMsapArshvAbhitApashca santApaH [1] karapAdayoH| <br /> |
− | jvaraH sarvA~ggagashceti lakShaNaM rAjayakShmaNaH||52|| | + | jvaraH sarvA~ggagashceti lakShaNaM rAjayakShmaNaH||52||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The typical characteristics of ''rajayakshma'' include a feeling of warmth (or burning sensation) in the shoulders and flanks, burning sensation in hands, and feet, and raised temperature all over the body.[52] | | The typical characteristics of ''rajayakshma'' include a feeling of warmth (or burning sensation) in the shoulders and flanks, burning sensation in hands, and feet, and raised temperature all over the body.[52] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Swarabheda'' (hoarseness of voice) and characteristics as per ''dosha'' affliction ==== | | ==== ''Swarabheda'' (hoarseness of voice) and characteristics as per ''dosha'' affliction ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | वातात्पित्तात्कफाद्रक्तात् कासवेगात् सपीनसात्| | + | वातात्पित्तात्कफाद्रक्तात् कासवेगात् सपीनसात्|<br /> |
− | स्वरभेदो भवेद्वाताद्रूक्षः क्षामश्चलः स्वरः||५३|| | + | स्वरभेदो भवेद्वाताद्रूक्षः क्षामश्चलः स्वरः||५३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तालुकण्ठपरिप्लोषः पित्ताद्वक्तुमसूयते| | + | तालुकण्ठपरिप्लोषः पित्ताद्वक्तुमसूयते| <br /> |
− | कफाद्भेदो विबद्धश्च स्वरः खुरखुरायते ||५४|| | + | कफाद्भेदो विबद्धश्च स्वरः खुरखुरायते ||५४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सन्नो रक्तविबद्धत्वात् स्वरः कृच्छ्रात् प्रवर्तते| | + | सन्नो रक्तविबद्धत्वात् स्वरः कृच्छ्रात् प्रवर्तते| <br /> |
− | कासातिवेगात् कषणः पीनसात्कफवातिकः||५५|| | + | कासातिवेगात् कषणः पीनसात्कफवातिकः||५५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पार्श्वशूलं त्वनियतं सङ्कोचायामलक्षणम्| | + | पार्श्वशूलं त्वनियतं सङ्कोचायामलक्षणम्| <br /> |
− | शिरःशूलं ससन्तापं यक्ष्मिणः स्यात्सगौरवम्||५६|| | + | शिरःशूलं ससन्तापं यक्ष्मिणः स्यात्सगौरवम्||५६||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | vātātpittātkaphādraktāt kāsavēgāt sapīnasāt| | + | vātātpittātkaphādraktāt kāsavēgāt sapīnasāt| <br /> |
− | svarabhēdō bhavēdvātādrūkṣaḥ kṣāmaścalaḥ svaraḥ||53|| | + | svarabhēdō bhavēdvātādrūkṣaḥ kṣāmaścalaḥ svaraḥ||53|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tālukaṇṭhapariplōṣaḥ pittādvaktumasūyatē| | + | tālukaṇṭhapariplōṣaḥ pittādvaktumasūyatē| <br /> |
− | kaphādbhēdō vibaddhaśca svaraḥ khurakhurāyatē ||54|| | + | kaphādbhēdō vibaddhaśca svaraḥ khurakhurāyatē ||54|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sannō raktavibaddhatvāt svaraḥ kr̥cchrāt pravartatē| | + | sannō raktavibaddhatvāt svaraḥ kr̥cchrāt pravartatē| <br /> |
− | kāsātivēgāt kaṣaṇaḥ pīnasātkaphavātikaḥ||55|| | + | kāsātivēgāt kaṣaṇaḥ pīnasātkaphavātikaḥ||55|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pārśvaśūlaṁ tvaniyataṁ saṅkōcāyāmalakṣaṇam| | + | pārśvaśūlaṁ tvaniyataṁ saṅkōcāyāmalakṣaṇam| <br /> |
− | śiraḥśūlaṁ sasantāpaṁ yakṣmiṇaḥ syātsagauravam||56|| | + | śiraḥśūlaṁ sasantāpaṁ yakṣmiṇaḥ syātsagauravam||56||<br /> |
| | | |
− | vAtAtpittAtkaphAdraktAt kAsavegAt sapInasAt| | + | vAtAtpittAtkaphAdraktAt kAsavegAt sapInasAt| <br /> |
− | svarabhedo bhavedvAtAdrUkShaH kShAmashcalaH svaraH||53|| | + | svarabhedo bhavedvAtAdrUkShaH kShAmashcalaH svaraH||53|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tAlukaNThapariploShaH pittAdvaktumasUyate| | + | tAlukaNThapariploShaH pittAdvaktumasUyate| <br /> |
− | kaphAdbhedo [1] vibaddhashca svaraH khurakhurAyate [2] ||54|| | + | kaphAdbhedo [1] vibaddhashca svaraH khurakhurAyate [2] ||54|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sanno raktavibaddhatvAt svaraH kRucchrAt pravartate| | + | sanno raktavibaddhatvAt svaraH kRucchrAt pravartate| <br /> |
− | kAsAtivegAt kaShaNaH [3] pInasAtkaphavAtikaH||55|| | + | kAsAtivegAt kaShaNaH [3] pInasAtkaphavAtikaH||55|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pArshvashUlaM tvaniyataM sa~gkocAyAmalakShaNam| | + | pArshvashUlaM tvaniyataM sa~gkocAyAmalakShaNam| <br /> |
− | shiraHshUlaM sasantApaM yakShmiNaH syAtsagauravam||56|| | + | shiraHshUlaM sasantApaM yakShmiNaH syAtsagauravam||56||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Hoarseness of voice is engendered by morbid ''vata, pitta'' or ''kapha'' or blood or by, strain of coughing or by coryza. The voice becomes husky, feeble and unstable if caused by ''vata''; if by ''pitta'', there will be burning of the palate and throat and the patient will refrain from talking; and if due to ''kapha'', the voice is low, choked and is marked with a wheezing sound; owing to the obstruction to the flow of blood, the voice becomes low and comes out with difficulty; the throat becomes injured by the strain of exorbitant coughing and in case of coryza, the characterstics of the voice resemble the condition in ''vata'' and ''kapha'' afflictions. | | Hoarseness of voice is engendered by morbid ''vata, pitta'' or ''kapha'' or blood or by, strain of coughing or by coryza. The voice becomes husky, feeble and unstable if caused by ''vata''; if by ''pitta'', there will be burning of the palate and throat and the patient will refrain from talking; and if due to ''kapha'', the voice is low, choked and is marked with a wheezing sound; owing to the obstruction to the flow of blood, the voice becomes low and comes out with difficulty; the throat becomes injured by the strain of exorbitant coughing and in case of coryza, the characterstics of the voice resemble the condition in ''vata'' and ''kapha'' afflictions. |
Line 606: |
Line 655: |
| | | |
| ==== ''Rakta shthivana'' (hemoptysis) ==== | | ==== ''Rakta shthivana'' (hemoptysis) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | अभिसन्ने शरीरे तु यक्ष्मिणो विषमाशनात्| | + | अभिसन्ने शरीरे तु यक्ष्मिणो विषमाशनात्| <br /> |
− | कण्ठात्प्रवर्तते रक्तं श्लेष्मा चोत्क्लिष्टसञ्चितः||५७|| | + | कण्ठात्प्रवर्तते रक्तं श्लेष्मा चोत्क्लिष्टसञ्चितः||५७||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | abhisannē śarīrē tu yakṣmiṇō viṣamāśanāt| | + | abhisannē śarīrē tu yakṣmiṇō viṣamāśanāt| <br /> |
− | kaṇṭhātpravartatē raktaṁ ślēṣmā cōtkliṣṭasañcitaḥ||57|| | + | kaṇṭhātpravartatē raktaṁ ślēṣmā cōtkliṣṭasañcitaḥ||57||<br /> |
| | | |
− | abhisanne [1] sharIre tu yakShmiNo viShamAshanAt| | + | abhisanne [1] sharIre tu yakShmiNo viShamAshanAt| <br /> |
− | kaNThAtpravartate raktaM shleShmA cotkliShTasa~jcitaH||57|| | + | kaNThAtpravartate raktaM shleShmA cotkliShTasa~jcitaH||57||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| In the emaciated condition of ''rajayakshma'' patients’ indulgence in irregular diet causes expectoration of blood. The ''kapha'' too, having been vitiated, is expectorated from the throat. [57] | | In the emaciated condition of ''rajayakshma'' patients’ indulgence in irregular diet causes expectoration of blood. The ''kapha'' too, having been vitiated, is expectorated from the throat. [57] |
| | | |
| ==== Causes of depletion of tissues ==== | | ==== Causes of depletion of tissues ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | रक्तं विबद्धमार्गत्वान्मांसादीन्नानुपद्यते | | + | रक्तं विबद्धमार्गत्वान्मांसादीन्नानुपद्यते | <br /> |
− | आमाशयस्थमुत्क्लिष्टं बहुत्वात् कण्ठमेति च||५८|| | + | आमाशयस्थमुत्क्लिष्टं बहुत्वात् कण्ठमेति च||५८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | वातश्लेष्मविबद्धत्वादुरसः श्वासमृच्छति| | + | वातश्लेष्मविबद्धत्वादुरसः श्वासमृच्छति| <br /> |
− | दोषैरुपहते चाग्नौ सपिच्छमतिसार्यते||५९|| | + | दोषैरुपहते चाग्नौ सपिच्छमतिसार्यते||५९||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | raktaṁ vibaddhamārgatvānmāṁsādīnnānupadyatē | | + | raktaṁ vibaddhamārgatvānmāṁsādīnnānupadyatē | <br /> |
− | āmāśayasthamutkliṣṭaṁ bahutvāt kaṇṭhamēti ca||58|| | + | āmāśayasthamutkliṣṭaṁ bahutvāt kaṇṭhamēti ca||58|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vātaślēṣmavibaddhatvādurasaḥ śvāsamr̥cchati| | + | vātaślēṣmavibaddhatvādurasaḥ śvāsamr̥cchati| <br /> |
− | dōṣairupahatē cāgnau sapicchamatisāryatē||59|| | + | dōṣairupahatē cāgnau sapicchamatisāryatē||59||<br /> |
| | | |
− | raktaM vibaddhamArgatvAnmAMsAdInnAnupadyate [2] | | + | raktaM vibaddhamArgatvAnmAMsAdInnAnupadyate [2] | <br /> |
− | AmAshayasthamutkliShTaM bahutvAt kaNThameti ca||58|| | + | AmAshayasthamutkliShTaM bahutvAt kaNThameti ca||58|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vAtashleShmavibaddhatvAdurasaH shvAsamRucchati| | + | vAtashleShmavibaddhatvAdurasaH shvAsamRucchati| <br /> |
− | doShairupahate cAgnau sapicchamatisAryate||59|| | + | doShairupahate cAgnau sapicchamatisAryate||59||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Owing to obstruction in the circulation, the blood does not nourish the flesh tissues and other body elements. The blood staying in the stomach, getting agitated owing to incremented quantity, passes to the throat. Due to the obstruction of ''vata'' and ''kapha'' in the chest, there occurs dyspnea and the ''agni'', being impaired by the morbid humors, causes the patient to pass loose and slimy stools.[57-59] | | Owing to obstruction in the circulation, the blood does not nourish the flesh tissues and other body elements. The blood staying in the stomach, getting agitated owing to incremented quantity, passes to the throat. Due to the obstruction of ''vata'' and ''kapha'' in the chest, there occurs dyspnea and the ''agni'', being impaired by the morbid humors, causes the patient to pass loose and slimy stools.[57-59] |
| | | |
| ==== Cause of anorexia ==== | | ==== Cause of anorexia ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | पृथग्दोषैः समस्तैर्वा जिह्वाहृदयसंश्रितैः| | + | पृथग्दोषैः समस्तैर्वा जिह्वाहृदयसंश्रितैः| <br /> |
− | जायतेऽरुचिराहारे द्विष्टैरर्थैश्च मानसैः||६०|| | + | जायतेऽरुचिराहारे द्विष्टैरर्थैश्च मानसैः||६०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | कषायतिक्तमधुरैर्विद्यान्मुखरसैः क्रमात्| | + | कषायतिक्तमधुरैर्विद्यान्मुखरसैः क्रमात्| <br /> |
− | वाताद्यैररुचिं जातां मानसीं दोषदर्शनात्||६१|| | + | वाताद्यैररुचिं जातां मानसीं दोषदर्शनात्||६१||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | pr̥thagdōṣaiḥ samastairvā jihvāhr̥dayasaṁśritaiḥ| | + | pr̥thagdōṣaiḥ samastairvā jihvāhr̥dayasaṁśritaiḥ| <br /> |
− | jāyatē'rucirāhārē dviṣṭairarthaiśca mānasaiḥ||60|| | + | jāyatē'rucirāhārē dviṣṭairarthaiśca mānasaiḥ||60|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kaṣāyatiktamadhurairvidyānmukharasaiḥ kramāt| | + | kaṣāyatiktamadhurairvidyānmukharasaiḥ kramāt| <br /> |
− | vātādyairaruciṁ jātāṁ mānasīṁ dōṣadarśanāt||61|| | + | vātādyairaruciṁ jātāṁ mānasīṁ dōṣadarśanāt||61||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pRuthagdoShaiH samastairvA jihvAhRudayasaMshritaiH| | + | pRuthagdoShaiH samastairvA jihvAhRudayasaMshritaiH| <br /> |
− | jAyate~arucirAhAre dviShTairarthaishca mAnasaiH||60|| | + | jAyate~arucirAhAre dviShTairarthaishca mAnasaiH||60|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kaShAyatiktamadhurairvidyAnmukharasaiH kramAt| | + | kaShAyatiktamadhurairvidyAnmukharasaiH kramAt| <br /> |
− | vAtAdyairaruciM jAtAM mAnasIM doShadarshanAt||61|| | + | vAtAdyairaruciM jAtAM mAnasIM doShadarshanAt||61||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Anorexia or dislike for food is caused by morbidity of one or all the three ''doshas'' in the tongue or heart or by repugnant perceptions. By knowing the astringent, bitter or sweet taste in the mouth, anorexia is to be diagnosed as caused due to dominance of ''vata, pitta'' or ''kapha'' respectively. Anorexia due to morbid perceptions is psychosomatic, caused due to visually observing disturbing or morbid visuals. [60-61] | | Anorexia or dislike for food is caused by morbidity of one or all the three ''doshas'' in the tongue or heart or by repugnant perceptions. By knowing the astringent, bitter or sweet taste in the mouth, anorexia is to be diagnosed as caused due to dominance of ''vata, pitta'' or ''kapha'' respectively. Anorexia due to morbid perceptions is psychosomatic, caused due to visually observing disturbing or morbid visuals. [60-61] |
| | | |
| ==== Cause of vomiting ==== | | ==== Cause of vomiting ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | अरोचकात् कासवेगाद्दोषोत्क्लेशाद्भयादपि| | + | अरोचकात् कासवेगाद्दोषोत्क्लेशाद्भयादपि| <br /> |
− | छर्दिर्या सा विकाराणामन्येषामप्युपद्रवः||६२|| | + | छर्दिर्या सा विकाराणामन्येषामप्युपद्रवः||६२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | arōcakāt kāsavēgāddōṣōtklēśādbhayādapi| | + | arōcakāt kāsavēgāddōṣōtklēśādbhayādapi| <br /> |
− | chardiryā sā vikārāṇāmanyēṣāmapyupadravaḥ||62|| | + | chardiryā sā vikārāṇāmanyēṣāmapyupadravaḥ||62||<br /> |
| | | |
− | arocakAt kAsavegAddoShotkleshAdbhayAdapi| | + | arocakAt kAsavegAddoShotkleshAdbhayAdapi| <br /> |
− | chardiryA sA vikArANAmanyeShAmapyupadravaH||62|| | + | chardiryA sA vikArANAmanyeShAmapyupadravaH||62||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Regurgitating or vomiting is caused by anorexia, bouts of coughing, and the precipitation of morbid ''dosha'' and as a result of fear; it occurs as a complication of other diseases additionally. [62] | | Regurgitating or vomiting is caused by anorexia, bouts of coughing, and the precipitation of morbid ''dosha'' and as a result of fear; it occurs as a complication of other diseases additionally. [62] |
| | | |
| ==== Management of ''rajayakshma'' ==== | | ==== Management of ''rajayakshma'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | सर्वस्त्रिदोषजो यक्ष्मा दोषाणां तु बलाबलम्| | + | सर्वस्त्रिदोषजो यक्ष्मा दोषाणां तु बलाबलम्| <br /> |
− | परीक्ष्यावस्थिकं वैद्यः शोषिणं समुपाचरेत्||६३|| | + | परीक्ष्यावस्थिकं वैद्यः शोषिणं समुपाचरेत्||६३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रतिश्याये शिरःशूले कासे श्वासे स्वरक्षये| | + | प्रतिश्याये शिरःशूले कासे श्वासे स्वरक्षये| <br /> |
− | पार्श्वशूले च विविधाः क्रियाः साधारणीः शृणु||६४|| | + | पार्श्वशूले च विविधाः क्रियाः साधारणीः शृणु||६४||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | sarvastridōṣajō yakṣmā dōṣāṇāṁ tu balābalam| | + | sarvastridōṣajō yakṣmā dōṣāṇāṁ tu balābalam| <br /> |
− | parīkṣyāvasthikaṁ vaidyaḥ śōṣiṇaṁ samupācarēt||63|| | + | parīkṣyāvasthikaṁ vaidyaḥ śōṣiṇaṁ samupācarēt||63|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratiśyāyē śiraḥśūlē kāsē śvāsē svarakṣayē| | + | pratiśyāyē śiraḥśūlē kāsē śvāsē svarakṣayē| <br /> |
− | pārśvaśūlē ca vividhāḥ kriyāḥ sādhāraṇīḥ śr̥ṇu||64|| | + | pārśvaśūlē ca vividhāḥ kriyāḥ sādhāraṇīḥ śr̥ṇu||64||<br /> |
| | | |
− | sarvastridoShajo yakShmA doShANAM tu balAbalam| | + | sarvastridoShajo yakShmA doShANAM tu balAbalam| <br /> |
− | parIkShyAvasthikaM vaidyaH shoShiNaM samupAcaret||63|| | + | parIkShyAvasthikaM vaidyaH shoShiNaM samupAcaret||63|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratishyAye shiraHshUle kAse shvAse svarakShaye| | + | pratishyAye shiraHshUle kAse shvAse svarakShaye| <br /> |
− | pArshvashUle ca vividhAH kriyAH sAdhAraNIH shRuNu||64|| | + | pArshvashUle ca vividhAH kriyAH sAdhAraNIH shRuNu||64||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| All types of ''rajayakshma'' are caused due to vitiated three ''doshas'' and hence the physician should treat the patient after examining the degree of intensity of the morbid ''dosha'' and the vigor of the patient. The physician should carefully observe the status (of patient) – by the symptoms such as coryza, headache, cough, dyspnea, asthenia of the voice and pain in flanks. [63-64] | | All types of ''rajayakshma'' are caused due to vitiated three ''doshas'' and hence the physician should treat the patient after examining the degree of intensity of the morbid ''dosha'' and the vigor of the patient. The physician should carefully observe the status (of patient) – by the symptoms such as coryza, headache, cough, dyspnea, asthenia of the voice and pain in flanks. [63-64] |
| | | |
| ==== Various dietary articles in treatment ==== | | ==== Various dietary articles in treatment ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | पीनसे स्वेदमभ्यङ्गं धूममालेपनानि च| | + | पीनसे स्वेदमभ्यङ्गं धूममालेपनानि च| <br /> |
− | परिषेकावगाहांश्च यावकं [१] वाट्यमेव च||६५|| | + | परिषेकावगाहांश्च यावकं [१] वाट्यमेव च||६५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | लवणाम्लकटूष्णांश्च रसान् स्नेहोपबृंहितान्| | + | लवणाम्लकटूष्णांश्च रसान् स्नेहोपबृंहितान्| <br /> |
− | लावतित्तिरिदक्षाणां वर्तकानां च कल्पयेत्||६६|| | + | लावतित्तिरिदक्षाणां वर्तकानां च कल्पयेत्||६६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सपिप्पलीकं सयवं सकुलत्थं सनागरम्| | + | सपिप्पलीकं सयवं सकुलत्थं सनागरम्| <br /> |
− | दाडिमामलकोपेतं स्निग्धमाजं रसं पिबेत्||६७|| | + | दाडिमामलकोपेतं स्निग्धमाजं रसं पिबेत्||६७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तेन षड्विनिवर्तन्ते विकाराः पीनसादयः| | + | तेन षड्विनिवर्तन्ते विकाराः पीनसादयः| <br /> |
− | मूलकानां कुलत्थानां यूषैर्वा सूपकल्पितैः [२] ||६८|| | + | मूलकानां कुलत्थानां यूषैर्वा सूपकल्पितैः [२] ||६८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यवगोधूमशाल्यन्नैर्यथासात्म्यमुपाचरेत्| | + | यवगोधूमशाल्यन्नैर्यथासात्म्यमुपाचरेत्| <br /> |
− | पिबेत्प्रसादं वारुण्या जलं वा पाञ्चमूलिकम्||६९|| | + | पिबेत्प्रसादं वारुण्या जलं वा पाञ्चमूलिकम्||६९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | धान्यनागरसिद्धं वा तामलक्याऽथवा शृतम्| | + | धान्यनागरसिद्धं वा तामलक्याऽथवा शृतम्| <br /> |
− | पर्णिनीभिश्चतसृभिस्तेन चान्नानि कल्पयेत्||७०|| | + | पर्णिनीभिश्चतसृभिस्तेन चान्नानि कल्पयेत्||७०||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | pīnasē svēdamabhyaṅgaṁ dhūmamālēpanāni ca| | + | pīnasē svēdamabhyaṅgaṁ dhūmamālēpanāni ca| <br /> |
− | pariṣēkāvagāhāṁśca yāvakaṁ vāṭyamēva ca||65|| | + | pariṣēkāvagāhāṁśca yāvakaṁ vāṭyamēva ca||65|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lavaṇāmlakaṭūṣṇāṁśca rasān snēhōpabr̥ṁhitān| | + | lavaṇāmlakaṭūṣṇāṁśca rasān snēhōpabr̥ṁhitān| <br /> |
− | lāvatittiridakṣāṇāṁ vartakānāṁ ca kalpayēt||66|| | + | lāvatittiridakṣāṇāṁ vartakānāṁ ca kalpayēt||66|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sapippalīkaṁ sayavaṁ sakulatthaṁ sanāgaram| | + | sapippalīkaṁ sayavaṁ sakulatthaṁ sanāgaram| <br /> |
− | dāḍimāmalakōpētaṁ snigdhamājaṁ rasaṁ pibēt||67|| | + | dāḍimāmalakōpētaṁ snigdhamājaṁ rasaṁ pibēt||67|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tēna ṣaḍvinivartantē vikārāḥ pīnasādayaḥ| | + | tēna ṣaḍvinivartantē vikārāḥ pīnasādayaḥ| <br /> |
− | mūlakānāṁ kulatthānāṁ yūṣairvā sūpakalpitaiḥ ||68|| | + | mūlakānāṁ kulatthānāṁ yūṣairvā sūpakalpitaiḥ ||68|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavagōdhūmaśālyannairyathāsātmyamupācarēt| | + | yavagōdhūmaśālyannairyathāsātmyamupācarēt| <br /> |
− | pibētprasādaṁ vāruṇyā jalaṁ vā pāñcamūlikam||69|| | + | pibētprasādaṁ vāruṇyā jalaṁ vā pāñcamūlikam||69|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dhānyanāgarasiddhaṁ vā tāmalakyā'thavā śr̥tam| | + | dhānyanāgarasiddhaṁ vā tāmalakyā'thavā śr̥tam| <br /> |
− | parṇinībhiścatasr̥bhistēna cānnāni kalpayēt||70|| | + | parṇinībhiścatasr̥bhistēna cānnāni kalpayēt||70||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pInase svedamabhya~ggaM dhUmamAlepanAni ca| | + | pInase svedamabhya~ggaM dhUmamAlepanAni ca| <br /> |
− | pariShekAvagAhAMshca yAvakaM [1] vATyameva ca||65|| | + | pariShekAvagAhAMshca yAvakaM [1] vATyameva ca||65|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lavaNAmlakaTUShNAMshca rasAn snehopabRuMhitAn| | + | lavaNAmlakaTUShNAMshca rasAn snehopabRuMhitAn| <br /> |
− | lAvatittiridakShANAM vartakAnAM ca kalpayet||66|| | + | lAvatittiridakShANAM vartakAnAM ca kalpayet||66|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sapippalIkaM sayavaM sakulatthaM sanAgaram| | + | sapippalIkaM sayavaM sakulatthaM sanAgaram| <br /> |
− | dADimAmalakopetaM snigdhamAjaM rasaM pibet||67|| | + | dADimAmalakopetaM snigdhamAjaM rasaM pibet||67|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tena ShaDvinivartante vikArAH pInasAdayaH| | + | tena ShaDvinivartante vikArAH pInasAdayaH| <br /> |
− | mUlakAnAM kulatthAnAM yUShairvA sUpakalpitaiH [2] ||68|| | + | mUlakAnAM kulatthAnAM yUShairvA sUpakalpitaiH [2] ||68|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavagodhUmashAlyannairyathAsAtmyamupAcaret| | + | yavagodhUmashAlyannairyathAsAtmyamupAcaret| <br /> |
− | pibetprasAdaM vAruNyA jalaM vA pA~jcamUlikam||69|| | + | pibetprasAdaM vAruNyA jalaM vA pA~jcamUlikam||69||<br /> |
| | | |
− | dhAnyanAgarasiddhaM vA tAmalakyA~athavA shRutam| | + | dhAnyanAgarasiddhaM vA tAmalakyA~athavA shRutam| <br /> |
− | parNinIbhishcatasRubhistena cAnnAni kalpayet||70|| | + | parNinIbhishcatasRubhistena cAnnAni kalpayet||70||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| In coryza, sudation, inunction, smoke application, effusion, bath, cooked barley and barley gruel, meat juices of quail, partridge, chicken and ''vartaka'' quail prepared with salt, acid, pungent, sultry and unctuous articles should be given. The patient should imbibe the juice of goat-meat prepared with long pepper, barley, horse gram, dry ginger, pomegranate or emblic myrobalan and unctuous articles. By taking this, the hexad of coryza and other disorders vanishes. The patient should be treated with a suitable diet of soups made up of radish or horse gram or out of staple food composed of barley, wheat or shali rice. A potion made up of the clear supernatant part of ''varuni'' wine or water, prepared with pentaradix, or with coriander and dry ginger or with feather-foil, or with the tetrad of herbs called ''parnini'' is advised. Articles of diet may additionally be consumed with these decoctions.[65-70] | | In coryza, sudation, inunction, smoke application, effusion, bath, cooked barley and barley gruel, meat juices of quail, partridge, chicken and ''vartaka'' quail prepared with salt, acid, pungent, sultry and unctuous articles should be given. The patient should imbibe the juice of goat-meat prepared with long pepper, barley, horse gram, dry ginger, pomegranate or emblic myrobalan and unctuous articles. By taking this, the hexad of coryza and other disorders vanishes. The patient should be treated with a suitable diet of soups made up of radish or horse gram or out of staple food composed of barley, wheat or shali rice. A potion made up of the clear supernatant part of ''varuni'' wine or water, prepared with pentaradix, or with coriander and dry ginger or with feather-foil, or with the tetrad of herbs called ''parnini'' is advised. Articles of diet may additionally be consumed with these decoctions.[65-70] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Swedana'' (sudation) ==== | | ==== ''Swedana'' (sudation) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | कृशरोत्कारिकामाषकुलत्थयवपायसैः| | + | कृशरोत्कारिकामाषकुलत्थयवपायसैः| <br /> |
− | सङ्करस्वेदविधिना कण्ठं पार्श्वमुरः शिरः||७१|| | + | सङ्करस्वेदविधिना कण्ठं पार्श्वमुरः शिरः||७१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्वेदयेत् पत्रभङ्गेण शिरश्च परिषेचयेत्| | + | स्वेदयेत् पत्रभङ्गेण शिरश्च परिषेचयेत्| <br /> |
− | बलागुडूचीमधुकशृतैर्वा वारिभिः सुखैः||७२|| | + | बलागुडूचीमधुकशृतैर्वा वारिभिः सुखैः||७२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | बस्तमत्स्यशिरोभिर्वा नाडीस्वेदं प्रयोजयेत्| | + | बस्तमत्स्यशिरोभिर्वा नाडीस्वेदं प्रयोजयेत्| <br /> |
− | कण्ठे शिरसि पार्श्वे च पयोभिर्वा सवातिकैः||७३|| | + | कण्ठे शिरसि पार्श्वे च पयोभिर्वा सवातिकैः||७३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | औदकानूपमांसानि सलिलं पाञ्चमूलिकम्| | + | औदकानूपमांसानि सलिलं पाञ्चमूलिकम्| <br /> |
− | सस्नेहमारनालं वा नाडीस्वेदे प्रयोजयेत्||७४|| | + | सस्नेहमारनालं वा नाडीस्वेदे प्रयोजयेत्||७४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जीवन्त्याः शतपुष्पाया बलाया मधुकस्य च| | + | जीवन्त्याः शतपुष्पाया बलाया मधुकस्य च| <br /> |
− | वचाया वेशवारस्य विदार्या मूलकस्य च||७५|| | + | वचाया वेशवारस्य विदार्या मूलकस्य च||७५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | औदकानूपमांसानामुपनाहाः सुसंस्कृताः| | + | औदकानूपमांसानामुपनाहाः सुसंस्कृताः| <br /> |
− | शस्यन्ते सचतुःस्नेहाः शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलिनाम्||७६|| | + | शस्यन्ते सचतुःस्नेहाः शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलिनाम्||७६||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | kr̥śarōtkārikāmāṣakulatthayavapāyasaiḥ| | + | kr̥śarōtkārikāmāṣakulatthayavapāyasaiḥ| <br /> |
− | saṅkarasvēdavidhinā kaṇṭhaṁ pārśvamuraḥ śiraḥ||71|| | + | saṅkarasvēdavidhinā kaṇṭhaṁ pārśvamuraḥ śiraḥ||71|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | svēdayēt patrabhaṅgēṇa śiraśca pariṣēcayēt| | + | svēdayēt patrabhaṅgēṇa śiraśca pariṣēcayēt| <br /> |
− | balāguḍūcīmadhukaśr̥tairvā vāribhiḥ sukhaiḥ||72|| | + | balāguḍūcīmadhukaśr̥tairvā vāribhiḥ sukhaiḥ||72|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bastamatsyaśirōbhirvā nāḍīsvēdaṁ prayōjayēt| | + | bastamatsyaśirōbhirvā nāḍīsvēdaṁ prayōjayēt| <br /> |
− | kaṇṭhē śirasi pārśvē ca payōbhirvā savātikaiḥ||73|| | + | kaṇṭhē śirasi pārśvē ca payōbhirvā savātikaiḥ||73|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | audakānūpamāṁsāni salilaṁ pāñcamūlikam| | + | audakānūpamāṁsāni salilaṁ pāñcamūlikam| <br /> |
− | sasnēhamāranālaṁ vā nāḍīsvēdē prayōjayēt||74|| | + | sasnēhamāranālaṁ vā nāḍīsvēdē prayōjayēt||74|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jīvantyāḥ śatapuṣpāyā balāyā madhukasya ca| | + | jīvantyāḥ śatapuṣpāyā balāyā madhukasya ca| <br /> |
− | vacāyā vēśavārasya vidāryā mūlakasya ca||75|| | + | vacāyā vēśavārasya vidāryā mūlakasya ca||75|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | audakānūpamāṁsānāmupanāhāḥ susaṁskr̥tāḥ| | + | audakānūpamāṁsānāmupanāhāḥ susaṁskr̥tāḥ| <br /> |
− | śasyantē sacatuḥsnēhāḥ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlinām||76|| | + | śasyantē sacatuḥsnēhāḥ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlinām||76||<br /> |
| | | |
− | kRusharotkArikAmAShakulatthayavapAyasaiH| | + | kRusharotkArikAmAShakulatthayavapAyasaiH| <br /> |
− | sa~gkarasvedavidhinA kaNThaM pArshvamuraH shiraH||71|| | + | sa~gkarasvedavidhinA kaNThaM pArshvamuraH shiraH||71|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | svedayet patrabha~ggeNa shirashca pariShecayet| | + | svedayet patrabha~ggeNa shirashca pariShecayet| <br /> |
− | balAguDUcImadhukashRutairvA vAribhiH sukhaiH||72|| | + | balAguDUcImadhukashRutairvA vAribhiH sukhaiH||72|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bastamatsyashirobhirvA nADIsvedaM prayojayet| | + | bastamatsyashirobhirvA nADIsvedaM prayojayet| <br /> |
− | kaNThe shirasi pArshve ca payobhirvA savAtikaiH||73|| | + | kaNThe shirasi pArshve ca payobhirvA savAtikaiH||73|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | audakAnUpamAMsAni salilaM pA~jcamUlikam| | + | audakAnUpamAMsAni salilaM pA~jcamUlikam| <br /> |
− | sasnehamAranAlaM vA nADIsvede prayojayet||74|| | + | sasnehamAranAlaM vA nADIsvede prayojayet||74|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jIvantyAH shatapuShpAyA balAyA madhukasya ca| | + | jIvantyAH shatapuShpAyA balAyA madhukasya ca| <br /> |
− | vacAyA veshavArasya vidAryA mUlakasya ca||75|| | + | vacAyA veshavArasya vidAryA mUlakasya ca||75|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | audakAnUpamAMsAnAmupanAhAH susaMskRutAH| | + | audakAnUpamAMsAnAmupanAhAH susaMskRutAH| <br /> |
− | shasyante sacatuHsnehAH shiraHpArshvAMsashUlinAm||76|| | + | shasyante sacatuHsnehAH shiraHpArshvAMsashUlinAm||76||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The throat, the flanks, the chest and the head regions should be made to sweat by a commixed type of lump sudation prepared using ''krushara'' (a type of gruel), ''utkarika'' (hot poultice), ebony gram, horse gram, barley and milk pudding; or the head should be effused genially with warm decoction prepared using the leaves of heart leaved ''sida, guduchi'' and liquorice; or the steam kettle sudation prepared with the decoctions of the heads of goat and fish or with ''vata'' pacifying decoctions should be utilized for sweating the throat, head and sides of the chest. The flesh of aquatic and wet land animals, the decoction of pentaradix or sour ''conjee'' with unctuous articles may be utilized in steam kettle sudation. The poultices well prepared with cork swallow wort, heart of dil seeds, leaved ''sida,'' liquorice, saccharine flag cooked meat, white yam, radish, the flesh of aquatic and wet land creatures and commixed with all the four kinds of unctuous articles should be applied to persons suffering from pain applied to persons suffering from pain in the head, side of the chest and shoulder region.[71-76] | | The throat, the flanks, the chest and the head regions should be made to sweat by a commixed type of lump sudation prepared using ''krushara'' (a type of gruel), ''utkarika'' (hot poultice), ebony gram, horse gram, barley and milk pudding; or the head should be effused genially with warm decoction prepared using the leaves of heart leaved ''sida, guduchi'' and liquorice; or the steam kettle sudation prepared with the decoctions of the heads of goat and fish or with ''vata'' pacifying decoctions should be utilized for sweating the throat, head and sides of the chest. The flesh of aquatic and wet land animals, the decoction of pentaradix or sour ''conjee'' with unctuous articles may be utilized in steam kettle sudation. The poultices well prepared with cork swallow wort, heart of dil seeds, leaved ''sida,'' liquorice, saccharine flag cooked meat, white yam, radish, the flesh of aquatic and wet land creatures and commixed with all the four kinds of unctuous articles should be applied to persons suffering from pain applied to persons suffering from pain in the head, side of the chest and shoulder region.[71-76] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Alepana'' (local applications) ==== | | ==== ''Alepana'' (local applications) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | शतपुष्पा समधुकं कुष्ठं तगरचन्दने| | + | शतपुष्पा समधुकं कुष्ठं तगरचन्दने| <br /> |
− | आलेपनं स्यात् सघृतं शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलनुत्||७७|| | + | आलेपनं स्यात् सघृतं शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलनुत्||७७|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | śatapuṣpā samadhukaṁ kuṣṭhaṁ tagaracandanē| | + | śatapuṣpā samadhukaṁ kuṣṭhaṁ tagaracandanē| <br /> |
− | ālēpanaṁ syāt saghr̥taṁ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlanut||77|| | + | ālēpanaṁ syāt saghr̥taṁ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlanut||77||<br /> |
| | | |
− | shatapuShpA samadhukaM kuShThaM tagaracandane| | + | shatapuShpA samadhukaM kuShThaM tagaracandane| <br /> |
− | AlepanaM syAt saghRutaM shiraHpArshvAMsashUlanut||77|| | + | AlepanaM syAt saghRutaM shiraHpArshvAMsashUlanut||77|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Dil, liquorice, costus, Indian valerian and sandalwood with ghee make an effective curative for pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder regions. [77] | | Dil, liquorice, costus, Indian valerian and sandalwood with ghee make an effective curative for pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder regions. [77] |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | बला रास्ना तिलाः सर्पिर्मधुकं नीलमुत्पलम्| | + | बला रास्ना तिलाः सर्पिर्मधुकं नीलमुत्पलम्| <br /> |
− | पलङ्कषा देवदारु चन्दनं केशरं घृतम्||७८|| | + | पलङ्कषा देवदारु चन्दनं केशरं घृतम्||७८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | वीरा बला विदारी च कृष्णगन्धा पुनर्नवा| | + | वीरा बला विदारी च कृष्णगन्धा पुनर्नवा| <br /> |
− | शतावरी पयस्या च कत्तृणं मधुकं घृतम्||७९|| | + | शतावरी पयस्या च कत्तृणं मधुकं घृतम्||७९||<br /> |
| | | |
− | चत्वार एते श्लोकार्धैः प्रदेहाः परिकीर्तिताः| | + | चत्वार एते श्लोकार्धैः प्रदेहाः परिकीर्तिताः| <br /> |
− | शस्ताः संसृष्टदोषाणां शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलिनाम्||८०|| | + | शस्ताः संसृष्टदोषाणां शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलिनाम्||८०|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | balā rāsnā tilāḥ sarpirmadhukaṁ nīlamutpalam| | + | balā rāsnā tilāḥ sarpirmadhukaṁ nīlamutpalam| <br /> |
− | palaṅkaṣā dēvadāru candanaṁ kēśaraṁ ghr̥tam||78|| | + | palaṅkaṣā dēvadāru candanaṁ kēśaraṁ ghr̥tam||78|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vīrā balā vidārī ca kr̥ṣṇagandhā punarnavā| | + | vīrā balā vidārī ca kr̥ṣṇagandhā punarnavā| <br /> |
− | śatāvarī payasyā ca kattr̥ṇaṁ madhukaṁ ghr̥tam||79|| | + | śatāvarī payasyā ca kattr̥ṇaṁ madhukaṁ ghr̥tam||79|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | catvāra ētē ślōkārdhaiḥ pradēhāḥ parikīrtitāḥ| | + | catvāra ētē ślōkārdhaiḥ pradēhāḥ parikīrtitāḥ| <br /> |
− | śastāḥ saṁsr̥ṣṭadōṣāṇāṁ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlinām||80|| | + | śastāḥ saṁsr̥ṣṭadōṣāṇāṁ śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlinām||80|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | balA rAsnA tilAH sarpirmadhukaM nIlamutpalam| | + | balA rAsnA tilAH sarpirmadhukaM nIlamutpalam| <br /> |
− | pala~gkaShA devadAru candanaM kesharaM ghRutam||78|| | + | pala~gkaShA devadAru candanaM kesharaM ghRutam||78|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vIrA balA vidArI ca kRuShNagandhA punarnavA| | + | vIrA balA vidArI ca kRuShNagandhA punarnavA| <br /> |
− | shatAvarI payasyA ca kattRuNaM madhukaM ghRutam||79|| | + | shatAvarI payasyA ca kattRuNaM madhukaM ghRutam||79|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | catvAra ete shlokArdhaiH pradehAH parikIrtitAH| | + | catvAra ete shlokArdhaiH pradehAH parikIrtitAH| <br /> |
− | shastAH saMsRuShTadoShANAM shiraHpArshvAMsashUlinAm||80|| | + | shastAH saMsRuShTadoShANAM shiraHpArshvAMsashUlinAm||80|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| #Heart leaved ''sida'', Indian groundsel, ''til,'' ghee, liquorice and blue water-lily; | | #Heart leaved ''sida'', Indian groundsel, ''til,'' ghee, liquorice and blue water-lily; |
Line 859: |
Line 935: |
| | | |
| ==== Beneficial procedures of purification ==== | | ==== Beneficial procedures of purification ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | नावनं धूमपानानि स्नेहाश्चौत्तरभक्तिकाः| | + | नावनं धूमपानानि स्नेहाश्चौत्तरभक्तिकाः| <br /> |
− | तैलान्यभ्यङ्गयोगीनि [१] बस्तिकर्म तथा परम्||८१|| | + | तैलान्यभ्यङ्गयोगीनि [१] बस्तिकर्म तथा परम्||८१||<br /> |
| | | |
− | शृङ्गालाबुजलौकोभिः प्रदुष्टं व्यधनेन वा| | + | शृङ्गालाबुजलौकोभिः प्रदुष्टं व्यधनेन वा| <br /> |
− | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलेषु रुधिरं तस्य निर्हरेत्||८२|| | + | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलेषु रुधिरं तस्य निर्हरेत्||८२|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | nāvanaṁ dhūmapānāni snēhāścauttarabhaktikāḥ| | + | nāvanaṁ dhūmapānāni snēhāścauttarabhaktikāḥ| <br /> |
− | tailānyabhyaṅgayōgīni [1] bastikarma tathā param||81|| | + | tailānyabhyaṅgayōgīni [1] bastikarma tathā param||81||<br /> |
| | | |
− | śr̥ṅgālābujalaukōbhiḥ praduṣṭaṁ vyadhanēna vā| | + | śr̥ṅgālābujalaukōbhiḥ praduṣṭaṁ vyadhanēna vā| <br /> |
− | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlēṣu rudhiraṁ tasya nirharēt||82|| | + | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlēṣu rudhiraṁ tasya nirharēt||82|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | nAvanaM dhUmapAnAni snehAshcauttarabhaktikAH| | + | nAvanaM dhUmapAnAni snehAshcauttarabhaktikAH| <br /> |
− | tailAnyabhya~ggayogIni [1] bastikarma tathA param||81|| | + | tailAnyabhya~ggayogIni [1] bastikarma tathA param||81||<br /> |
| | | |
− | shRu~ggAlAbujalaukobhiH praduShTaM vyadhanena vA| | + | shRu~ggAlAbujalaukobhiH praduShTaM vyadhanena vA| <br /> |
− | shiraHpArshvAMsashUleShu rudhiraM tasya nirharet||82|| | + | shiraHpArshvAMsashUleShu rudhiraM tasya nirharet||82|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Nasal errhines, medicated smokes, post prandial unctuous potions, inunctions with medicated oils, and enemata are very useful options to help ease pain. In conditions of pain in the head, flanks and shoulder region, the vitiated blood should be depleted by betokens of the horn, bottle gourd, application of leeches or venesection.[81-82] | | Nasal errhines, medicated smokes, post prandial unctuous potions, inunctions with medicated oils, and enemata are very useful options to help ease pain. In conditions of pain in the head, flanks and shoulder region, the vitiated blood should be depleted by betokens of the horn, bottle gourd, application of leeches or venesection.[81-82] |
| | | |
| ==== External applications ==== | | ==== External applications ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | प्रदेहः सघृतश्चेष्टः पद्मकोशीरचन्दनैः| | + | प्रदेहः सघृतश्चेष्टः पद्मकोशीरचन्दनैः| <br /> |
− | दूर्वामधुकमञ्जिष्ठाकेशरैर्वा घृताप्लुतैः||८३|| | + | दूर्वामधुकमञ्जिष्ठाकेशरैर्वा घृताप्लुतैः||८३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रपौण्डरीकनिर्गुण्डीपद्मकेशरमुत्पलम् [२] | | + | प्रपौण्डरीकनिर्गुण्डीपद्मकेशरमुत्पलम् [२] | <br /> |
− | कशेरुकाः पयस्या च ससर्पिष्कं प्रलेपनम्||८४|| | + | कशेरुकाः पयस्या च ससर्पिष्कं प्रलेपनम्||८४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | चन्दनाद्येन तैलेन शतधौतेन सर्पिषा| | + | चन्दनाद्येन तैलेन शतधौतेन सर्पिषा| <br /> |
− | अभ्यङ्गः, पयसा सेकः शस्तश्च मधुकाम्बुना||८५|| | + | अभ्यङ्गः, पयसा सेकः शस्तश्च मधुकाम्बुना||८५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | माहेन्द्रेण सुशीतेन चन्दनादिशृतेन वा| | + | माहेन्द्रेण सुशीतेन चन्दनादिशृतेन वा| <br /> |
− | परिषेकः प्रयोक्तव्य इति संशमनी क्रिया||८६|| | + | परिषेकः प्रयोक्तव्य इति संशमनी क्रिया||८६||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | pradēhaḥ saghr̥taścēṣṭaḥ padmakōśīracandanaiḥ| | + | pradēhaḥ saghr̥taścēṣṭaḥ padmakōśīracandanaiḥ| <br /> |
− | dūrvāmadhukamañjiṣṭhākēśarairvā ghr̥tāplutaiḥ||83|| | + | dūrvāmadhukamañjiṣṭhākēśarairvā ghr̥tāplutaiḥ||83|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prapauṇḍarīkanirguṇḍīpadmakēśaramutpalam [2] | | + | prapauṇḍarīkanirguṇḍīpadmakēśaramutpalam [2] | <br /> |
− | kaśērukāḥ payasyā ca sasarpiṣkaṁ pralēpanam||84|| | + | kaśērukāḥ payasyā ca sasarpiṣkaṁ pralēpanam||84|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | candanādyēna tailēna śatadhautēna sarpiṣā| | + | candanādyēna tailēna śatadhautēna sarpiṣā| <br /> |
− | abhyaṅgaḥ, payasā sēkaḥ śastaśca madhukāmbunā||85|| | + | abhyaṅgaḥ, payasā sēkaḥ śastaśca madhukāmbunā||85|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | māhēndrēṇa suśītēna candanādiśr̥tēna vā| | + | māhēndrēṇa suśītēna candanādiśr̥tēna vā| <br /> |
− | pariṣēkaḥ prayōktavya iti saṁśamanī kriyā||86|| | + | pariṣēkaḥ prayōktavya iti saṁśamanī kriyā||86||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pradehaH saghRutashceShTaH padmakoshIracandanaiH| | + | pradehaH saghRutashceShTaH padmakoshIracandanaiH| <br /> |
− | dUrvAmadhukama~jjiShThAkesharairvA ghRutAplutaiH||83|| | + | dUrvAmadhukama~jjiShThAkesharairvA ghRutAplutaiH||83|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prapauNDarIkanirguNDIpadmakesharamutpalam [2] | | + | prapauNDarIkanirguNDIpadmakesharamutpalam [2] | <br /> |
− | kasherukAH payasyA ca sasarpiShkaM pralepanam||84|| | + | kasherukAH payasyA ca sasarpiShkaM pralepanam||84|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | candanAdyena tailena shatadhautena sarpiShA| | + | candanAdyena tailena shatadhautena sarpiShA| <br /> |
− | abhya~ggaH, payasA sekaH shastashca madhukAmbunA||85|| | + | abhya~ggaH, payasA sekaH shastashca madhukAmbunA||85|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAhendreNa sushItena candanAdishRutena vA| | + | mAhendreNa sushItena candanAdishRutena vA| <br /> |
− | pariShekaH prayoktavya iti saMshamanI kriyA||86|| | + | pariShekaH prayoktavya iti saMshamanI kriyA||86||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The application of Himalayan cherry, cuscus grass and sandal wood with ghee is salutary; or the application of scitch grass, liquorice, Indian madder and fragrant poon soaked in ghee; or the application composed of tubers of white lotus chaste tree, red lotus, fragrant poon, blue water lily, rushnut and milky yam with ghee. Inunction with the compound sandal oil or ghee processed for hundred times and affusion with milk or liquorice water are recommended. Effusion with cold rainwater or the sandalwood group should be given. Thus the pacification treatment has been described.. [83-86] | | The application of Himalayan cherry, cuscus grass and sandal wood with ghee is salutary; or the application of scitch grass, liquorice, Indian madder and fragrant poon soaked in ghee; or the application composed of tubers of white lotus chaste tree, red lotus, fragrant poon, blue water lily, rushnut and milky yam with ghee. Inunction with the compound sandal oil or ghee processed for hundred times and affusion with milk or liquorice water are recommended. Effusion with cold rainwater or the sandalwood group should be given. Thus the pacification treatment has been described.. [83-86] |
| | | |
| ==== Indications of ''shodhana'' (purification) ==== | | ==== Indications of ''shodhana'' (purification) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | दोषाधिकानां वमनं शस्यते सविरेचनम्| | + | दोषाधिकानां वमनं शस्यते सविरेचनम्| <br /> |
− | स्नेहस्वेदोपपन्नानां सस्नेहं यन्न कर्शनम्||८७|| | + | स्नेहस्वेदोपपन्नानां सस्नेहं यन्न कर्शनम्||८७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | शोषी मुञ्चति गात्राणि पुरीषस्रंसनादपि| | + | शोषी मुञ्चति गात्राणि पुरीषस्रंसनादपि| <br /> |
− | अबलापेक्षिणीं मात्रां किं पुनर्यो विरिच्यते||८८|| | + | अबलापेक्षिणीं मात्रां किं पुनर्यो विरिच्यते||८८||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | dōṣādhikānāṁ vamanaṁ śasyatē savirēcanam| | + | dōṣādhikānāṁ vamanaṁ śasyatē savirēcanam| <br /> |
− | snēhasvēdōpapannānāṁ sasnēhaṁ yanna karśanam||87|| | + | snēhasvēdōpapannānāṁ sasnēhaṁ yanna karśanam||87|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śōṣī muñcati gātrāṇi purīṣasraṁsanādapi| | + | śōṣī muñcati gātrāṇi purīṣasraṁsanādapi| <br /> |
− | abalāpēkṣiṇīṁ mātrāṁ kiṁ punaryō viricyatē||88|| | + | abalāpēkṣiṇīṁ mātrāṁ kiṁ punaryō viricyatē||88||<br /> |
| | | |
− | doShAdhikAnAM vamanaM shasyate savirecanam| | + | doShAdhikAnAM vamanaM shasyate savirecanam| <br /> |
− | snehasvedopapannAnAM sasnehaM yanna karshanam||87|| | + | snehasvedopapannAnAM sasnehaM yanna karshanam||87|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shoShI mu~jcati gAtrANi purIShasraMsanAdapi| | + | shoShI mu~jcati gAtrANi purIShasraMsanAdapi| <br /> |
− | abalApekShiNIM mAtrAM kiM punaryo viricyate||88|| | + | abalApekShiNIM mAtrAM kiM punaryo viricyate||88||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| In cases of excessively aggravated ''dosha,'' mild therapeutic emesis and purgation therapies after proper ''snehana'' (oleation) and ''swedana'' (sudation) which do not cause emaciation can be administered. The emaciated man (consumptive) may suffer death even on loosening of stools. Then what can be said if a strong dose of purification is given in ''rajayakshma'' patient beyond his tolerance?[87-88] | | In cases of excessively aggravated ''dosha,'' mild therapeutic emesis and purgation therapies after proper ''snehana'' (oleation) and ''swedana'' (sudation) which do not cause emaciation can be administered. The emaciated man (consumptive) may suffer death even on loosening of stools. Then what can be said if a strong dose of purification is given in ''rajayakshma'' patient beyond his tolerance?[87-88] |
| | | |
| ==== Various formulations for ''nasya'' (nasal errhines) ==== | | ==== Various formulations for ''nasya'' (nasal errhines) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | योगान् संशुद्धकोष्ठानां कासे श्वासे स्वरक्षये| | + | योगान् संशुद्धकोष्ठानां कासे श्वासे स्वरक्षये| <br /> |
− | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलेषु सिद्धानेतान्प्रयोजयेत्||८९|| | + | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलेषु सिद्धानेतान्प्रयोजयेत्||८९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | बलाविदारिगन्धाद्यैर्विदार्या [१] मधुकेन वा| | + | बलाविदारिगन्धाद्यैर्विदार्या [१] मधुकेन वा| <br /> |
− | सिद्धं सलवणं सर्पिर्नस्यं स्यात्स्वर्यमुत्तमम्||९०|| | + | सिद्धं सलवणं सर्पिर्नस्यं स्यात्स्वर्यमुत्तमम्||९०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रपौण्डरीकं मधुकं पिप्पली बृहती बला| | + | प्रपौण्डरीकं मधुकं पिप्पली बृहती बला| <br /> |
− | क्षीरं [२] सर्पिश्च तत्सिद्धं स्वर्यं स्यान्नावनं परम्||९१|| | + | क्षीरं [२] सर्पिश्च तत्सिद्धं स्वर्यं स्यान्नावनं परम्||९१|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | yōgān saṁśuddhakōṣṭhānāṁ kāsē śvāsē svarakṣayē| | + | yōgān saṁśuddhakōṣṭhānāṁ kāsē śvāsē svarakṣayē| <br /> |
− | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlēṣu siddhānētānprayōjayēt||89|| | + | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlēṣu siddhānētānprayōjayēt||89||<br /> |
| | | |
− | balāvidārigandhādyairvidāryā [1] madhukēna vā| | + | balāvidārigandhādyairvidāryā [1] madhukēna vā| <br /> |
− | siddhaṁ salavaṇaṁ sarpirnasyaṁ syātsvaryamuttamam||90|| | + | siddhaṁ salavaṇaṁ sarpirnasyaṁ syātsvaryamuttamam||90|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prapauṇḍarīkaṁ madhukaṁ pippalī br̥hatī balā| | + | prapauṇḍarīkaṁ madhukaṁ pippalī br̥hatī balā| <br /> |
− | kṣīraṁ [2] sarpiśca tatsiddhaṁ svaryaṁ syānnāvanaṁ param||91|| | + | kṣīraṁ [2] sarpiśca tatsiddhaṁ svaryaṁ syānnāvanaṁ param||91|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yogAn saMshuddhakoShThAnAM kAse shvAse svarakShaye| | + | yogAn saMshuddhakoShThAnAM kAse shvAse svarakShaye| <br /> |
− | shiraHpArshvAMsashUleShu siddhAnetAnprayojayet||89|| | + | shiraHpArshvAMsashUleShu siddhAnetAnprayojayet||89|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | balAvidArigandhAdyairvidAryA [1] madhukena vA| | + | balAvidArigandhAdyairvidAryA [1] madhukena vA| <br /> |
− | siddhaM salavaNaM sarpirnasyaM syAtsvaryamuttamam||90|| | + | siddhaM salavaNaM sarpirnasyaM syAtsvaryamuttamam||90|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prapauNDarIkaM madhukaM pippalI bRuhatI balA| | + | prapauNDarIkaM madhukaM pippalI bRuhatI balA| <br /> |
− | kShIraM [2] sarpishca tatsiddhaM svaryaM syAnnAvanaM param||91|| | + | kShIraM [2] sarpishca tatsiddhaM svaryaM syAnnAvanaM param||91|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| When the alimentary system is well purified, the following tested recipes should be utilized for the remedy of cough, dyspnea, loss of voice and pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder region: | | When the alimentary system is well purified, the following tested recipes should be utilized for the remedy of cough, dyspnea, loss of voice and pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder region: |
Line 976: |
Line 1,064: |
| | | |
| ==== Various unctuous formulations ==== | | ==== Various unctuous formulations ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नं कासश्वासनिबर्हणम्| | + | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नं कासश्वासनिबर्हणम्| <br /> |
− | प्रयुज्यमानं बहुशो घृतं चौत्तरभक्तिकम्||९२|| | + | प्रयुज्यमानं बहुशो घृतं चौत्तरभक्तिकम्||९२||<br /> |
| | | |
− | दशमूलेन पयसा सिद्धं मांसरसेन च| | + | दशमूलेन पयसा सिद्धं मांसरसेन च| <br /> |
− | बलागर्भं घृतं सद्यो रोगानेतान् प्रबाधते||९३|| | + | बलागर्भं घृतं सद्यो रोगानेतान् प्रबाधते||९३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | भक्तस्योपरि मध्ये वा यथाग्न्यभ्यवचारितम्| | + | भक्तस्योपरि मध्ये वा यथाग्न्यभ्यवचारितम्| <br /> |
− | रास्नाघृतं वा सक्षीरं सक्षीरं वा बलाघृतम्||९४|| | + | रास्नाघृतं वा सक्षीरं सक्षीरं वा बलाघृतम्||९४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | लेहान् कासापहान् स्वर्याञ् श्वासहिक्कानिबर्हणान्| | + | लेहान् कासापहान् स्वर्याञ् श्वासहिक्कानिबर्हणान्| <br /> |
− | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नान् स्नेहांश्चातः परं शृणु||९५|| | + | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नान् स्नेहांश्चातः परं शृणु||९५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | घृतं खर्जूरमृद्वीकाशर्कराक्षौद्रसंयुतम् [३] | | + | घृतं खर्जूरमृद्वीकाशर्कराक्षौद्रसंयुतम् [३] | <br /> |
− | सपिप्पलीकं वैस्वर्यकासश्वासज्वरापहम्||९६|| | + | सपिप्पलीकं वैस्वर्यकासश्वासज्वरापहम्||९६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | दशमूलशृतात् क्षीरात् सर्पिर्यदुदियान्नवम्| | + | दशमूलशृतात् क्षीरात् सर्पिर्यदुदियान्नवम्| <br /> |
− | सपिप्पलीकं सक्षौद्रं तत् परं स्वरबोधनम्||९७|| | + | सपिप्पलीकं सक्षौद्रं तत् परं स्वरबोधनम्||९७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नं कासश्वासज्वरापहम्| | + | शिरःपार्श्वांसशूलघ्नं कासश्वासज्वरापहम्| <br /> |
− | पञ्चभिः पञ्चमूलैर्वा शृताद्यदुदियाद्घृतम्||९८|| | + | पञ्चभिः पञ्चमूलैर्वा शृताद्यदुदियाद्घृतम्||९८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पञ्चानां पञ्चमूलानां रसे क्षीरचतुर्गुणे| | + | पञ्चानां पञ्चमूलानां रसे क्षीरचतुर्गुणे| <br /> |
− | सिद्धं सर्पिर्जयत्येतद्यक्ष्मणः सप्तकं बलम्||९९|| | + | सिद्धं सर्पिर्जयत्येतद्यक्ष्मणः सप्तकं बलम्||९९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | खर्जूरं पिप्पली द्राक्षा पथ्या शृङ्गी दुरालभा| | + | खर्जूरं पिप्पली द्राक्षा पथ्या शृङ्गी दुरालभा| <br /> |
− | त्रिफला पिप्पली मुस्तं शृङ्गाटगुडशर्कराः||१००|| | + | त्रिफला पिप्पली मुस्तं शृङ्गाटगुडशर्कराः||१००|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | वीरा शटी पुष्कराख्यं सुरसः शर्करा गुडः| | + | वीरा शटी पुष्कराख्यं सुरसः शर्करा गुडः| <br /> |
− | नागरं चित्रको लाजाः पिप्पल्यामलकं गुडः||१०१|| | + | नागरं चित्रको लाजाः पिप्पल्यामलकं गुडः||१०१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | श्लोकार्धैर्विहितानेतांल्लिह्यान्ना मधुसर्पिषा| | + | श्लोकार्धैर्विहितानेतांल्लिह्यान्ना मधुसर्पिषा| <br /> |
− | कासश्वासापहान्स्वर्यान्पार्श्वशूलापहांस्तथा||१०२|| | + | कासश्वासापहान्स्वर्यान्पार्श्वशूलापहांस्तथा||१०२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnaṁ kāsaśvāsanibarhaṇam| | + | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnaṁ kāsaśvāsanibarhaṇam| <br /> |
− | prayujyamānaṁ bahuśō ghr̥taṁ cauttarabhaktikam||92|| | + | prayujyamānaṁ bahuśō ghr̥taṁ cauttarabhaktikam||92|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | daśamūlēna payasā siddhaṁ māṁsarasēna ca| | + | daśamūlēna payasā siddhaṁ māṁsarasēna ca| <br /> |
− | balāgarbhaṁ ghr̥taṁ sadyō rōgānētān prabādhatē||93|| | + | balāgarbhaṁ ghr̥taṁ sadyō rōgānētān prabādhatē||93|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bhaktasyōpari madhyē vā yathāgnyabhyavacāritam| | + | bhaktasyōpari madhyē vā yathāgnyabhyavacāritam| <br /> |
− | rāsnāghr̥taṁ vā sakṣīraṁ sakṣīraṁ vā balāghr̥tam||94|| | + | rāsnāghr̥taṁ vā sakṣīraṁ sakṣīraṁ vā balāghr̥tam||94|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lēhān kāsāpahān svaryāñ śvāsahikkānibarhaṇān| | + | lēhān kāsāpahān svaryāñ śvāsahikkānibarhaṇān| <br /> |
− | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnān snēhāṁścātaḥ paraṁ śr̥ṇu||95|| | + | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnān snēhāṁścātaḥ paraṁ śr̥ṇu||95|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ghr̥taṁ kharjūramr̥dvīkāśarkarākṣaudrasaṁyutam [3] | | + | ghr̥taṁ kharjūramr̥dvīkāśarkarākṣaudrasaṁyutam [3] | <br /> |
− | sapippalīkaṁ vaisvaryakāsaśvāsajvarāpaham||96|| | + | sapippalīkaṁ vaisvaryakāsaśvāsajvarāpaham||96|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | daśamūlaśr̥tāt kṣīrāt sarpiryadudiyānnavam| | + | daśamūlaśr̥tāt kṣīrāt sarpiryadudiyānnavam| <br /> |
− | sapippalīkaṁ sakṣaudraṁ tat paraṁ svarabōdhanam||97|| | + | sapippalīkaṁ sakṣaudraṁ tat paraṁ svarabōdhanam||97|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnaṁ kāsaśvāsajvarāpaham| | + | śiraḥpārśvāṁsaśūlaghnaṁ kāsaśvāsajvarāpaham| <br /> |
− | pañcabhiḥ pañcamūlairvā śr̥tādyadudiyādghr̥tam||98|| | + | pañcabhiḥ pañcamūlairvā śr̥tādyadudiyādghr̥tam||98|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pañcānāṁ pañcamūlānāṁ rasē kṣīracaturguṇē| | + | pañcānāṁ pañcamūlānāṁ rasē kṣīracaturguṇē| <br /> |
− | siddhaṁ sarpirjayatyētadyakṣmaṇaḥ saptakaṁ balam||99|| | + | siddhaṁ sarpirjayatyētadyakṣmaṇaḥ saptakaṁ balam||99|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kharjūraṁ pippalī drākṣā pathyā śr̥ṅgī durālabhā| | + | kharjūraṁ pippalī drākṣā pathyā śr̥ṅgī durālabhā| <br /> |
− | triphalā pippalī mustaṁ śr̥ṅgāṭaguḍaśarkarāḥ||100|| | + | triphalā pippalī mustaṁ śr̥ṅgāṭaguḍaśarkarāḥ||100|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vīrā śaṭī puṣkarākhyaṁ surasaḥ śarkarā guḍaḥ| | + | vīrā śaṭī puṣkarākhyaṁ surasaḥ śarkarā guḍaḥ| <br /> |
− | nāgaraṁ citrakō lājāḥ pippalyāmalakaṁ guḍaḥ||101|| | + | nāgaraṁ citrakō lājāḥ pippalyāmalakaṁ guḍaḥ||101|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ślōkārdhairvihitānētāṁllihyānnā madhusarpiṣā| | + | ślōkārdhairvihitānētāṁllihyānnā madhusarpiṣā| <br /> |
− | kāsaśvāsāpahānsvaryānpārśvaśūlāpahāṁstathā||102|| | + | kāsaśvāsāpahānsvaryānpārśvaśūlāpahāṁstathā||102||<br /> |
| | | |
− | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnaM kAsashvAsanibarhaNam| | + | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnaM kAsashvAsanibarhaNam| <br /> |
− | prayujyamAnaM bahusho ghRutaM cauttarabhaktikam||92|| | + | prayujyamAnaM bahusho ghRutaM cauttarabhaktikam||92|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dashamUlena payasA siddhaM mAMsarasena ca| | + | dashamUlena payasA siddhaM mAMsarasena ca| <br /> |
− | balAgarbhaM ghRutaM sadyo rogAnetAn prabAdhate||93|| | + | balAgarbhaM ghRutaM sadyo rogAnetAn prabAdhate||93|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bhaktasyopari madhye vA yathAgnyabhyavacAritam| | + | bhaktasyopari madhye vA yathAgnyabhyavacAritam| <br /> |
− | rAsnAghRutaM vA sakShIraM sakShIraM vA balAghRutam||94|| | + | rAsnAghRutaM vA sakShIraM sakShIraM vA balAghRutam||94|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lehAn kAsApahAn svaryA~j shvAsahikkAnibarhaNAn| | + | lehAn kAsApahAn svaryA~j shvAsahikkAnibarhaNAn| <br /> |
− | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnAn snehAMshcAtaH paraM shRuNu||95|| | + | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnAn snehAMshcAtaH paraM shRuNu||95|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ghRutaM kharjUramRudvIkAsharkarAkShaudrasaMyutam [3] | | + | ghRutaM kharjUramRudvIkAsharkarAkShaudrasaMyutam [3] | <br /> |
− | sapippalIkaM vaisvaryakAsashvAsajvarApaham||96|| | + | sapippalIkaM vaisvaryakAsashvAsajvarApaham||96|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dashamUlashRutAt kShIrAt sarpiryadudiyAnnavam| | + | dashamUlashRutAt kShIrAt sarpiryadudiyAnnavam| <br /> |
− | sapippalIkaM sakShaudraM tat paraM svarabodhanam||97|| | + | sapippalIkaM sakShaudraM tat paraM svarabodhanam||97|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnaM kAsashvAsajvarApaham| | + | shiraHpArshvAMsashUlaghnaM kAsashvAsajvarApaham| <br /> |
− | pa~jcabhiH pa~jcamUlairvA shRutAdyadudiyAdghRutam||98|| | + | pa~jcabhiH pa~jcamUlairvA shRutAdyadudiyAdghRutam||98|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pa~jcAnAM pa~jcamUlAnAM rase kShIracaturguNe| | + | pa~jcAnAM pa~jcamUlAnAM rase kShIracaturguNe| <br /> |
− | siddhaM sarpirjayatyetadyakShmaNaH saptakaM balam||99|| | + | siddhaM sarpirjayatyetadyakShmaNaH saptakaM balam||99|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kharjUraM pippalI drAkShA pathyA shRu~ggI durAlabhA| | + | kharjUraM pippalI drAkShA pathyA shRu~ggI durAlabhA| <br /> |
− | triphalA pippalI mustaM shRu~ggATaguDasharkarAH||100|| | + | triphalA pippalI mustaM shRu~ggATaguDasharkarAH||100|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vIrA shaTI puShkarAkhyaM surasaH sharkarA guDaH| | + | vIrA shaTI puShkarAkhyaM surasaH sharkarA guDaH| <br /> |
− | nAgaraM citrako lAjAH pippalyAmalakaM guDaH||101|| | + | nAgaraM citrako lAjAH pippalyAmalakaM guDaH||101|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shlokArdhairvihitAnetAMllihyAnnA madhusarpiShA| | + | shlokArdhairvihitAnetAMllihyAnnA madhusarpiShA| <br /> |
− | kAsashvAsApahAnsvaryAnpArshvashUlApahAMstathA||102|| | + | kAsashvAsApahAnsvaryAnpArshvashUlApahAMstathA||102||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| *The frequent utilization of ghee as a post prandial potion remedies the pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder region in addition to curing cough and dyspnea. | | *The frequent utilization of ghee as a post prandial potion remedies the pain in the head, sides of the chest and shoulder region in addition to curing cough and dyspnea. |
Line 1,085: |
Line 1,176: |
| | | |
| ==== [[Sitopaladi formulation]] ==== | | ==== [[Sitopaladi formulation]] ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | सितोपलां तुगाक्षीरीं पिप्पलीं बहुलां त्वचम्| | + | सितोपलां तुगाक्षीरीं पिप्पलीं बहुलां त्वचम्| <br /> |
− | अन्त्यादूर्ध्वं द्विगुणितं लेहयेन्मधुसर्पिषा||१०३|| | + | अन्त्यादूर्ध्वं द्विगुणितं लेहयेन्मधुसर्पिषा||१०३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | चूर्णितं प्राशयेद्वा तच्छ्वासकासकफातुरम् [१] | | + | चूर्णितं प्राशयेद्वा तच्छ्वासकासकफातुरम् [१] | <br /> |
− | सुप्तजिह्वारोचकिनमल्पाग्निं पार्श्वशूलिनम्||१०४|| | + | सुप्तजिह्वारोचकिनमल्पाग्निं पार्श्वशूलिनम्||१०४||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | sitōpalāṁ tugākṣīrīṁ pippalīṁ bahulāṁ tvacam| | + | sitōpalāṁ tugākṣīrīṁ pippalīṁ bahulāṁ tvacam| <br /> |
− | antyādūrdhvaṁ dviguṇitaṁ lēhayēnmadhusarpiṣā||103|| | + | antyādūrdhvaṁ dviguṇitaṁ lēhayēnmadhusarpiṣā||103|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | cūrṇitaṁ prāśayēdvā tacchvāsakāsakaphāturam [1] | | + | cūrṇitaṁ prāśayēdvā tacchvāsakāsakaphāturam [1] | <br /> |
− | suptajihvārōcakinamalpāgniṁ pārśvaśūlinam||104|| | + | suptajihvārōcakinamalpāgniṁ pārśvaśūlinam||104||<br /> |
| | | |
− | sitopalAM tugAkShIrIM pippalIM bahulAM tvacam| | + | sitopalAM tugAkShIrIM pippalIM bahulAM tvacam| <br /> |
− | antyAdUrdhvaM dviguNitaM lehayenmadhusarpiShA||103|| | + | antyAdUrdhvaM dviguNitaM lehayenmadhusarpiShA||103|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | cUrNitaM prAshayedvA tacchvAsakAsakaphAturam [1] | | + | cUrNitaM prAshayedvA tacchvAsakAsakaphAturam [1] | <br /> |
− | suptajihvArocakinamalpAgniM pArshvashUlinam||104|| | + | suptajihvArocakinamalpAgniM pArshvashUlinam||104||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Sugar candy, bamboo manna, long pepper, cardamom and cinnamon - each taken in double the quantity of the preceding one (in the order mentioned here) should be ground into a powder and admixed with honey and ghee, and administered as a lincture; or the powder may be taken by itself. This remedies dyspnea, cough and excess of ''kapha''. It can be given to the patients suffering from anesthesia of tongue, anorexia, poor digestive fire and pleurodynia.[103-104] | | Sugar candy, bamboo manna, long pepper, cardamom and cinnamon - each taken in double the quantity of the preceding one (in the order mentioned here) should be ground into a powder and admixed with honey and ghee, and administered as a lincture; or the powder may be taken by itself. This remedies dyspnea, cough and excess of ''kapha''. It can be given to the patients suffering from anesthesia of tongue, anorexia, poor digestive fire and pleurodynia.[103-104] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Vasa ghee'' and ''shatavari ghee'' ==== | | ==== ''Vasa ghee'' and ''shatavari ghee'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | हस्तपादाङ्गदाहेषु ज्वरे रक्ते तथोर्ध्वगे| | + | हस्तपादाङ्गदाहेषु ज्वरे रक्ते तथोर्ध्वगे| <br /> |
− | वासाघृतं शतावर्या सिद्धं वा परमं हितम्||१०५|| | + | वासाघृतं शतावर्या सिद्धं वा परमं हितम्||१०५||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | hastapādāṅgadāhēṣu jvarē raktē tathōrdhvagē| | + | hastapādāṅgadāhēṣu jvarē raktē tathōrdhvagē| <br /> |
− | vāsāghr̥taṁ śatāvaryā siddhaṁ vā paramaṁ hitam||105|| | + | vāsāghr̥taṁ śatāvaryā siddhaṁ vā paramaṁ hitam||105||<br /> |
| | | |
− | hastapAdA~ggadAheShu jvare rakte tathordhvage| | + | hastapAdA~ggadAheShu jvare rakte tathordhvage| <br /> |
− | vAsAghRutaM shatAvaryA siddhaM vA paramaM hitam||105|| | + | vAsAghRutaM shatAvaryA siddhaM vA paramaM hitam||105||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| In cases of burning sensations in the hands, feet and limbs, fever and hemorrhage from the upper orifices of the body, ''vasa ghee'' or ''shatavari ghee'' proves very beneficial.[105] | | In cases of burning sensations in the hands, feet and limbs, fever and hemorrhage from the upper orifices of the body, ''vasa ghee'' or ''shatavari ghee'' proves very beneficial.[105] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Duralabhadi ghee'' ==== | | ==== ''Duralabhadi ghee'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | दुरालभां श्वदंष्ट्रां च चतस्रः पर्णिनीर्बलाम्| | + | दुरालभां श्वदंष्ट्रां च चतस्रः पर्णिनीर्बलाम्| <br /> |
− | भागान्पलोन्मितान् कृत्वा पलं पर्पटकस्य च||१०६|| | + | भागान्पलोन्मितान् कृत्वा पलं पर्पटकस्य च||१०६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पचेद्दशगुणे तोये दशभागावशेषिते| | + | पचेद्दशगुणे तोये दशभागावशेषिते| <br /> |
− | रसे सुपूते द्रव्याणामेषां कल्कान् समावपेत्||१०७|| | + | रसे सुपूते द्रव्याणामेषां कल्कान् समावपेत्||१०७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | शट्याः पुष्करमूलस्य पिप्पलीत्रायमाणयोः| | + | शट्याः पुष्करमूलस्य पिप्पलीत्रायमाणयोः| <br /> |
− | तामलक्याः किरातानां तिक्तस्य कुटजस्य च||१०८|| | + | तामलक्याः किरातानां तिक्तस्य कुटजस्य च||१०८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | फलानां सारिवायाश्च सुपिष्टान् कर्षसम्मितान्| | + | फलानां सारिवायाश्च सुपिष्टान् कर्षसम्मितान्| <br /> |
− | ततस्तेन घृतप्रस्थं क्षीरद्विगुणितं पचेत्||१०९|| | + | ततस्तेन घृतप्रस्थं क्षीरद्विगुणितं पचेत्||१०९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ज्वरं दाहं भ्रमं कासमंसपार्श्वशिरोरुजम्| | + | ज्वरं दाहं भ्रमं कासमंसपार्श्वशिरोरुजम्| <br /> |
− | तृष्णां छर्दिमतीसारमेतत् सर्पिर्व्यपोहति||११०|| | + | तृष्णां छर्दिमतीसारमेतत् सर्पिर्व्यपोहति||११०||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | durālabhāṁ śvadaṁṣṭrāṁ ca catasraḥ parṇinīrbalām| | + | durālabhāṁ śvadaṁṣṭrāṁ ca catasraḥ parṇinīrbalām| <br /> |
− | bhāgānpalōnmitān kr̥tvā palaṁ parpaṭakasya ca||106|| | + | bhāgānpalōnmitān kr̥tvā palaṁ parpaṭakasya ca||106|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pacēddaśaguṇē tōyē daśabhāgāvaśēṣitē| | + | pacēddaśaguṇē tōyē daśabhāgāvaśēṣitē| <br /> |
− | rasē supūtē dravyāṇāmēṣāṁ kalkān samāvapēt||107|| | + | rasē supūtē dravyāṇāmēṣāṁ kalkān samāvapēt||107|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śaṭyāḥ puṣkaramūlasya pippalītrāyamāṇayōḥ| | + | śaṭyāḥ puṣkaramūlasya pippalītrāyamāṇayōḥ| <br /> |
− | tāmalakyāḥ kirātānāṁ tiktasya kuṭajasya ca||108|| | + | tāmalakyāḥ kirātānāṁ tiktasya kuṭajasya ca||108|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | phalānāṁ sārivāyāśca supiṣṭān karṣasammitān| | + | phalānāṁ sārivāyāśca supiṣṭān karṣasammitān| <br /> |
− | tatastēna ghr̥taprasthaṁ kṣīradviguṇitaṁ pacēt||109|| | + | tatastēna ghr̥taprasthaṁ kṣīradviguṇitaṁ pacēt||109|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jvaraṁ dāhaṁ bhramaṁ kāsamaṁsapārśvaśirōrujam| | + | jvaraṁ dāhaṁ bhramaṁ kāsamaṁsapārśvaśirōrujam| <br /> |
− | tr̥ṣṇāṁ chardimatīsāramētat sarpirvyapōhati||110|| | + | tr̥ṣṇāṁ chardimatīsāramētat sarpirvyapōhati||110||<br /> |
| | | |
− | durAlabhAM shvadaMShTrAM ca catasraH parNinIrbalAm| | + | durAlabhAM shvadaMShTrAM ca catasraH parNinIrbalAm| <br /> |
− | bhAgAnpalonmitAn kRutvA palaM parpaTakasya ca||106|| | + | bhAgAnpalonmitAn kRutvA palaM parpaTakasya ca||106|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | paceddashaguNe toye dashabhAgAvasheShite| | + | paceddashaguNe toye dashabhAgAvasheShite| <br /> |
− | rase supUte dravyANAmeShAM kalkAn samAvapet||107|| | + | rase supUte dravyANAmeShAM kalkAn samAvapet||107|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shaTyAH puShkaramUlasya pippalItrAyamANayoH| | + | shaTyAH puShkaramUlasya pippalItrAyamANayoH| <br /> |
− | tAmalakyAH kirAtAnAM tiktasya kuTajasya ca||108|| | + | tAmalakyAH kirAtAnAM tiktasya kuTajasya ca||108|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | phalAnAM sArivAyAshca supiShTAn karShasammitAn| | + | phalAnAM sArivAyAshca supiShTAn karShasammitAn| <br /> |
− | tatastena ghRutaprasthaM kShIradviguNitaM pacet||109|| | + | tatastena ghRutaprasthaM kShIradviguNitaM pacet||109|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jvaraM dAhaM bhramaM kAsamaMsapArshvashirorujam| | + | jvaraM dAhaM bhramaM kAsamaMsapArshvashirorujam| <br /> |
− | tRuShNAM chardimatIsArametat sarpirvyapohati||110|| | + | tRuShNAM chardimatIsArametat sarpirvyapohati||110||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Decoct 48 gram each of cretan prickly clover, diminutive caltrops, and the tetrad of the drugs called ''parnini, sida'' and trailing ''rungia'', in ten times the quantity of water. When it is reduced to one tenth of its quantity, the solution should be filtered and a medicated ghee should be prepared by mixing these into a solution along with the paste of one ''tola'' each of zedoary, orris root, long pepper, ''zalil,'' feather foil, chiretta, ''kurchi'' seeds, and Indian sarsaparilla and 64 ''tolas'' of ghee and double this quantity of milk. This ghee is effective in healing fever, burning sensations, giddiness, cough, headache, pain in flanks and shoulder region, thirst, regurgitating and diarrhea. [106-110] | | Decoct 48 gram each of cretan prickly clover, diminutive caltrops, and the tetrad of the drugs called ''parnini, sida'' and trailing ''rungia'', in ten times the quantity of water. When it is reduced to one tenth of its quantity, the solution should be filtered and a medicated ghee should be prepared by mixing these into a solution along with the paste of one ''tola'' each of zedoary, orris root, long pepper, ''zalil,'' feather foil, chiretta, ''kurchi'' seeds, and Indian sarsaparilla and 64 ''tolas'' of ghee and double this quantity of milk. This ghee is effective in healing fever, burning sensations, giddiness, cough, headache, pain in flanks and shoulder region, thirst, regurgitating and diarrhea. [106-110] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Jivantyadi ghee'' ==== | | ==== ''Jivantyadi ghee'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | जीवन्तीं मधुकं द्राक्षां फलानि कुटजस्य च| | + | जीवन्तीं मधुकं द्राक्षां फलानि कुटजस्य च| <br /> |
− | शटीं पुष्करमूलं च व्याघ्रीं गोक्षुरकं बलाम्||१११|| | + | शटीं पुष्करमूलं च व्याघ्रीं गोक्षुरकं बलाम्||१११|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | नीलोत्पलं तामलकीं त्रायमाणां दुरालभाम्| | + | नीलोत्पलं तामलकीं त्रायमाणां दुरालभाम्| <br /> |
− | पिप्पलीं च समं पिष्ट्वा घृतं वैद्यो विपाचयेत्||११२|| | + | पिप्पलीं च समं पिष्ट्वा घृतं वैद्यो विपाचयेत्||११२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | एतद्व्याधिसमूहस्य रोगेशस्य समुत्थितम्| | + | एतद्व्याधिसमूहस्य रोगेशस्य समुत्थितम्| <br /> |
− | रूपमेकादशविधं सर्पिरग्र्यं व्यपोहति||११३|| | + | रूपमेकादशविधं सर्पिरग्र्यं व्यपोहति||११३||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | jīvantīṁ madhukaṁ drākṣāṁ phalāni kuṭajasya ca| | + | jīvantīṁ madhukaṁ drākṣāṁ phalāni kuṭajasya ca| <br /> |
− | śaṭīṁ puṣkaramūlaṁ ca vyāghrīṁ gōkṣurakaṁ balām||111|| | + | śaṭīṁ puṣkaramūlaṁ ca vyāghrīṁ gōkṣurakaṁ balām||111|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | nīlōtpalaṁ tāmalakīṁ trāyamāṇāṁ durālabhām| | + | nīlōtpalaṁ tāmalakīṁ trāyamāṇāṁ durālabhām| <br /> |
− | pippalīṁ ca samaṁ piṣṭvā ghr̥taṁ vaidyō vipācayēt||112|| | + | pippalīṁ ca samaṁ piṣṭvā ghr̥taṁ vaidyō vipācayēt||112|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ētadvyādhisamūhasya rōgēśasya samutthitam| | + | ētadvyādhisamūhasya rōgēśasya samutthitam| <br /> |
− | rūpamēkādaśavidhaṁ sarpiragryaṁ vyapōhati||113|| | + | rūpamēkādaśavidhaṁ sarpiragryaṁ vyapōhati||113||<br /> |
| | | |
− | jIvantIM madhukaM drAkShAM phalAni kuTajasya ca| | + | jIvantIM madhukaM drAkShAM phalAni kuTajasya ca| <br /> |
− | shaTIM puShkaramUlaM ca vyAghrIM gokShurakaM balAm||111|| | + | shaTIM puShkaramUlaM ca vyAghrIM gokShurakaM balAm||111|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | nIlotpalaM tAmalakIM trAyamANAM durAlabhAm| | + | nIlotpalaM tAmalakIM trAyamANAM durAlabhAm| <br /> |
− | pippalIM ca samaM piShTvA ghRutaM vaidyo vipAcayet||112|| | + | pippalIM ca samaM piShTvA ghRutaM vaidyo vipAcayet||112|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | etadvyAdhisamUhasya rogeshasya samutthitam| | + | etadvyAdhisamUhasya rogeshasya samutthitam| <br /> |
− | rUpamekAdashavidhaM sarpiragryaM vyapohati||113|| | + | rUpamekAdashavidhaM sarpiragryaM vyapohati||113||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The physician may prepare a medicated ghee by integrating pastes of equal quantities of cork swallow-wort, liquorice, grape, ''kurchi'' seeds, zedoary, orris roots, Indian night- shade, diminutive caltrops, heart leaved ''sida'', blue water-lily, feature foil, zalil, cretan prickly clover and long pepper. This excellent medicated ghee remedies the eleven symptoms of ''rajayakshma''.[111-113] | | The physician may prepare a medicated ghee by integrating pastes of equal quantities of cork swallow-wort, liquorice, grape, ''kurchi'' seeds, zedoary, orris roots, Indian night- shade, diminutive caltrops, heart leaved ''sida'', blue water-lily, feature foil, zalil, cretan prickly clover and long pepper. This excellent medicated ghee remedies the eleven symptoms of ''rajayakshma''.[111-113] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Baladi'' medicated milk ==== | | ==== ''Baladi'' medicated milk ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | बलां स्थिरां पृश्निपर्णीं बृहतीं सनिदिग्धिकाम्| | + | बलां स्थिरां पृश्निपर्णीं बृहतीं सनिदिग्धिकाम्| <br /> |
− | साधयित्वा रसे तस्मिन्पयो गव्यं सनागरम्||११४|| | + | साधयित्वा रसे तस्मिन्पयो गव्यं सनागरम्||११४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | द्राक्षाखर्जूरसर्पिर्भिः पिप्पल्या च शृतं सह| | + | द्राक्षाखर्जूरसर्पिर्भिः पिप्पल्या च शृतं सह| <br /> |
− | सक्षौद्रं ज्वरकासघ्नं स्वर्यं चैतत् प्रयोजयेत्||११५|| | + | सक्षौद्रं ज्वरकासघ्नं स्वर्यं चैतत् प्रयोजयेत्||११५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | आजस्य पयसश्चैवं प्रयोगो जाङ्गला रसाः| | + | आजस्य पयसश्चैवं प्रयोगो जाङ्गला रसाः| <br /> |
− | यूषार्थे चणका मुद्गा मकुष्ठाश्चोपकल्पिताः||११६|| | + | यूषार्थे चणका मुद्गा मकुष्ठाश्चोपकल्पिताः||११६||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | balāṁ sthirāṁ pr̥śniparṇīṁ br̥hatīṁ sanidigdhikām| | + | balāṁ sthirāṁ pr̥śniparṇīṁ br̥hatīṁ sanidigdhikām| <br /> |
− | sādhayitvā rasē tasminpayō gavyaṁ sanāgaram||114|| | + | sādhayitvā rasē tasminpayō gavyaṁ sanāgaram||114|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | drākṣākharjūrasarpirbhiḥ pippalyā ca śr̥taṁ saha| | + | drākṣākharjūrasarpirbhiḥ pippalyā ca śr̥taṁ saha| <br /> |
− | sakṣaudraṁ jvarakāsaghnaṁ svaryaṁ caitat prayōjayēt||115|| | + | sakṣaudraṁ jvarakāsaghnaṁ svaryaṁ caitat prayōjayēt||115|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ājasya payasaścaivaṁ prayōgō jāṅgalā rasāḥ| | + | ājasya payasaścaivaṁ prayōgō jāṅgalā rasāḥ| <br /> |
− | yūṣārthē caṇakā mudgā makuṣṭhāścōpakalpitāḥ||116|| | + | yūṣārthē caṇakā mudgā makuṣṭhāścōpakalpitāḥ||116||<br /> |
| | | |
− | balAM sthirAM pRushniparNIM bRuhatIM sanidigdhikAm| | + | balAM sthirAM pRushniparNIM bRuhatIM sanidigdhikAm| <br /> |
− | sAdhayitvA rase tasminpayo gavyaM sanAgaram||114|| | + | sAdhayitvA rase tasminpayo gavyaM sanAgaram||114|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | drAkShAkharjUrasarpirbhiH pippalyA ca shRutaM saha| | + | drAkShAkharjUrasarpirbhiH pippalyA ca shRutaM saha| <br /> |
− | sakShaudraM jvarakAsaghnaM svaryaM caitat prayojayet||115|| | + | sakShaudraM jvarakAsaghnaM svaryaM caitat prayojayet||115|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | Ajasya payasashcaivaM prayogo jA~ggalA rasAH| | + | Ajasya payasashcaivaM prayogo jA~ggalA rasAH| <br /> |
− | yUShArthe caNakA mudgA makuShThAshcopakalpitAH||116|| | + | yUShArthe caNakA mudgA makuShThAshcopakalpitAH||116||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Decoct in water the heart-leaved ''sida'' tick-trefoil, painted leaved uraria and yellow berried night- shade and prepare a medicated ghee by integrating to this decoction cow’s milk, the pulp of dry ginger, dates, ghee and long pepper. This milk, taken with honey, remedies fever and cough and amends the voice. | | Decoct in water the heart-leaved ''sida'' tick-trefoil, painted leaved uraria and yellow berried night- shade and prepare a medicated ghee by integrating to this decoction cow’s milk, the pulp of dry ginger, dates, ghee and long pepper. This milk, taken with honey, remedies fever and cough and amends the voice. |
Line 1,233: |
Line 1,339: |
| | | |
| ==== Treatment of burning sensation ==== | | ==== Treatment of burning sensation ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | ज्वराणां शमनीयो यः पूर्वमुक्तः क्रियाविधिः| | + | ज्वराणां शमनीयो यः पूर्वमुक्तः क्रियाविधिः| <br /> |
− | यक्ष्मिणां ज्वरदाहेषु ससर्पिष्कः प्रशस्यते||११७|| | + | यक्ष्मिणां ज्वरदाहेषु ससर्पिष्कः प्रशस्यते||११७||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | jvarāṇāṁ śamanīyō yaḥ pūrvamuktaḥ kriyāvidhiḥ| | + | jvarāṇāṁ śamanīyō yaḥ pūrvamuktaḥ kriyāvidhiḥ| <br /> |
− | yakṣmiṇāṁ jvaradāhēṣu sasarpiṣkaḥ praśasyatē||117|| | + | yakṣmiṇāṁ jvaradāhēṣu sasarpiṣkaḥ praśasyatē||117|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jvarANAM shamanIyo yaH pUrvamuktaH kriyAvidhiH| | + | jvarANAM shamanIyo yaH pUrvamuktaH kriyAvidhiH| <br /> |
− | yakShmiNAM jvaradAheShu sasarpiShkaH prashasyate||117|| | + | yakShmiNAM jvaradAheShu sasarpiShkaH prashasyate||117|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Medicinal pacification measures described earlier (in [[Jwara Chikitsa]]) are employed with ghee for the treatment of fever and burning sensations in the cases of patients suffering from ''rajayakshma''. [117] | | Medicinal pacification measures described earlier (in [[Jwara Chikitsa]]) are employed with ghee for the treatment of fever and burning sensations in the cases of patients suffering from ''rajayakshma''. [117] |
| | | |
| ==== Treatment of productive cough/excessive expectoration and vomiting ==== | | ==== Treatment of productive cough/excessive expectoration and vomiting ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | कफप्रसेके बलवाञ् श्लैष्मिकश्छर्दयेन्नरः| | + | कफप्रसेके बलवाञ् श्लैष्मिकश्छर्दयेन्नरः| <br /> |
− | पयसा फलयुक्तेन माधुकेन [१] रसेन वा||११८|| | + | पयसा फलयुक्तेन माधुकेन [१] रसेन वा||११८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सर्पिष्मत्या यवाग्वा वा वमनीयोपसिद्धया| | + | सर्पिष्मत्या यवाग्वा वा वमनीयोपसिद्धया| <br /> |
− | वान्तोऽन्नकाले लघ्वन्नमाददीत सदीपनम्||११९|| | + | वान्तोऽन्नकाले लघ्वन्नमाददीत सदीपनम्||११९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यवगोधूममाध्वीकसिध्वरिष्टसुरासवान्| | + | यवगोधूममाध्वीकसिध्वरिष्टसुरासवान्| <br /> |
− | जाङ्गलानि च शूल्यानि सेवमानः कफं जयेत्||१२०|| | + | जाङ्गलानि च शूल्यानि सेवमानः कफं जयेत्||१२०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | श्लेष्मणोऽतिप्रसेकेन वायुः श्लेष्माणमस्यति| | + | श्लेष्मणोऽतिप्रसेकेन वायुः श्लेष्माणमस्यति| <br /> |
− | कफप्रसेकं तं विद्वान् स्निग्धोष्णेनैव निर्जयेत्||१२१|| | + | कफप्रसेकं तं विद्वान् स्निग्धोष्णेनैव निर्जयेत्||१२१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | क्रिया कफप्रसेके या वम्यां सैव प्रशस्यते| | + | क्रिया कफप्रसेके या वम्यां सैव प्रशस्यते| <br /> |
− | हृद्यानि चान्नपानानि वातघ्नानि लघूनि च||१२२|| | + | हृद्यानि चान्नपानानि वातघ्नानि लघूनि च||१२२|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | kaphaprasēkē balavāñ ślaiṣmikaśchardayēnnaraḥ| | + | kaphaprasēkē balavāñ ślaiṣmikaśchardayēnnaraḥ| <br /> |
− | payasā phalayuktēna mādhukēna [1] rasēna vā||118|| | + | payasā phalayuktēna mādhukēna [1] rasēna vā||118|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sarpiṣmatyā yavāgvā vā vamanīyōpasiddhayā| | + | sarpiṣmatyā yavāgvā vā vamanīyōpasiddhayā| <br /> |
− | vāntō'nnakālē laghvannamādadīta sadīpanam||119|| | + | vāntō'nnakālē laghvannamādadīta sadīpanam||119|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavagōdhūmamādhvīkasidhvariṣṭasurāsavān| | + | yavagōdhūmamādhvīkasidhvariṣṭasurāsavān| <br /> |
− | jāṅgalāni ca śūlyāni sēvamānaḥ kaphaṁ jayēt||120|| | + | jāṅgalāni ca śūlyāni sēvamānaḥ kaphaṁ jayēt||120|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ślēṣmaṇō'tiprasēkēna vāyuḥ ślēṣmāṇamasyati| | + | ślēṣmaṇō'tiprasēkēna vāyuḥ ślēṣmāṇamasyati| <br /> |
− | kaphaprasēkaṁ taṁ vidvān snigdhōṣṇēnaiva nirjayēt||121|| | + | kaphaprasēkaṁ taṁ vidvān snigdhōṣṇēnaiva nirjayēt||121|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kriyā kaphaprasēkē yā vamyāṁ saiva praśasyatē| | + | kriyā kaphaprasēkē yā vamyāṁ saiva praśasyatē| <br /> |
− | hr̥dyāni cānnapānāni vātaghnāni laghūni ca||122|| | + | hr̥dyāni cānnapānāni vātaghnāni laghūni ca||122|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kaphapraseke balavA~j shlaiShmikashchardayennaraH| | + | kaphapraseke balavA~j shlaiShmikashchardayennaraH| <br /> |
− | payasA phalayuktena mAdhukena [1] rasena vA||118|| | + | payasA phalayuktena mAdhukena [1] rasena vA||118|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sarpiShmatyA yavAgvA vA vamanIyopasiddhayA| | + | sarpiShmatyA yavAgvA vA vamanIyopasiddhayA| <br /> |
− | vAnto~annakAle laghvannamAdadIta sadIpanam||119|| | + | vAnto~annakAle laghvannamAdadIta sadIpanam||119|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavagodhUmamAdhvIkasidhvariShTasurAsavAn| | + | yavagodhUmamAdhvIkasidhvariShTasurAsavAn| <br /> |
− | jA~ggalAni ca shUlyAni sevamAnaH kaphaM jayet||120|| | + | jA~ggalAni ca shUlyAni sevamAnaH kaphaM jayet||120|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shleShmaNo~atiprasekena vAyuH shleShmANamasyati| | + | shleShmaNo~atiprasekena vAyuH shleShmANamasyati| <br /> |
− | kaphaprasekaM taM vidvAn snigdhoShNenaiva nirjayet||121|| | + | kaphaprasekaM taM vidvAn snigdhoShNenaiva nirjayet||121|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kriyA kaphapraseke yA vamyAM saiva prashasyate| | + | kriyA kaphapraseke yA vamyAM saiva prashasyate| <br /> |
− | hRudyAni cAnnapAnAni vAtaghnAni laghUni ca||122|| | + | hRudyAni cAnnapAnAni vAtaghnAni laghUni ca||122||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| In cases of excessive expectoration of phlegm in a strong patient and kapha dominant condition, he should be treated with emesis by a draught of milk mixed with emetic nut or with liquorice decoction mixed with emetic nut, or gruel prepared with emetic drugs and mixed with ghee. And after proper emesis, light diet along with digestive stimulants should be given in meals. | | In cases of excessive expectoration of phlegm in a strong patient and kapha dominant condition, he should be treated with emesis by a draught of milk mixed with emetic nut or with liquorice decoction mixed with emetic nut, or gruel prepared with emetic drugs and mixed with ghee. And after proper emesis, light diet along with digestive stimulants should be given in meals. |
Line 1,301: |
Line 1,413: |
| | | |
| ==== Treatment of diarrhea ==== | | ==== Treatment of diarrhea ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | प्रायेणोपहताग्नित्वात् सपिच्छमतिसार्यते| | + | प्रायेणोपहताग्नित्वात् सपिच्छमतिसार्यते| <br /> |
− | प्राप्नोति चास्यवैरस्यं न चान्नमभिनन्दति||१२३|| | + | प्राप्नोति चास्यवैरस्यं न चान्नमभिनन्दति||१२३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | तस्याग्निदीपनान् योगानतीसारनिबर्हणान्| | + | तस्याग्निदीपनान् योगानतीसारनिबर्हणान्| <br /> |
− | वक्त्रशुद्धिकरान् कुर्यादरुचिप्रतिबाधकान्||१२४|| | + | वक्त्रशुद्धिकरान् कुर्यादरुचिप्रतिबाधकान्||१२४||<br /> |
| | | |
− | सनागरानिन्द्रयवान् पाययेत्तण्डुलाम्बुना| | + | सनागरानिन्द्रयवान् पाययेत्तण्डुलाम्बुना| <br /> |
− | सिद्धां यवागूं जीर्णे च चाङ्गेरीतक्रदाडिमैः||१२५|| | + | सिद्धां यवागूं जीर्णे च चाङ्गेरीतक्रदाडिमैः||१२५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पाठा बिल्वं यमानी च पातव्यं तक्रसंयुतम्| | + | पाठा बिल्वं यमानी च पातव्यं तक्रसंयुतम्| <br /> |
− | दुरालभा शृङ्गवेरं पाठा च सुरया सह||१२६|| | + | दुरालभा शृङ्गवेरं पाठा च सुरया सह||१२६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जम्ब्वाम्रमध्यं बिल्वं च सकपित्थं सनागरम्| | + | जम्ब्वाम्रमध्यं बिल्वं च सकपित्थं सनागरम्| <br /> |
− | पेयामण्डेन पातव्यमतीसारनिवृत्तये||१२७|| | + | पेयामण्डेन पातव्यमतीसारनिवृत्तये||१२७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | एतानेव च योगांस्त्रीन् पाठादीन् कारयेत् खडान्| | + | एतानेव च योगांस्त्रीन् पाठादीन् कारयेत् खडान्| <br /> |
− | ससूप्यधान्यान्सस्नेहान् [२] साम्लान्सङ्ग्रहणान् परम्||१२८|| | + | ससूप्यधान्यान्सस्नेहान् [२] साम्लान्सङ्ग्रहणान् परम्||१२८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | वेतसार्जुनजम्बूनां मृणालीकृष्णगन्धयोः| | + | वेतसार्जुनजम्बूनां मृणालीकृष्णगन्धयोः| <br /> |
− | श्रीपर्ण्या मदयन्त्याश्च यूथिकायाश्च पल्लवान्||१२९|| | + | श्रीपर्ण्या मदयन्त्याश्च यूथिकायाश्च पल्लवान्||१२९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मातुलुङ्गस्य धातक्या दाडिमस्य च कारयेत्| | + | मातुलुङ्गस्य धातक्या दाडिमस्य च कारयेत्| <br /> |
− | स्नेहाम्ललवणोपेतान् खडान् साङ्ग्राहिकान् परम्||१३०|| | + | स्नेहाम्ललवणोपेतान् खडान् साङ्ग्राहिकान् परम्||१३०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | चाङ्गेर्याश्चुक्रिकायाश्च दुग्धिकायाश्च कारयेत्| | + | चाङ्गेर्याश्चुक्रिकायाश्च दुग्धिकायाश्च कारयेत्| <br /> |
− | खडान्दधिसरोपेतान् ससर्पिष्कान्सदाडिमान्||१३१|| | + | खडान्दधिसरोपेतान् ससर्पिष्कान्सदाडिमान्||१३१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मांसानां लघुपाकानां रसाः साङ्ग्राहिकैर्युताः| | + | मांसानां लघुपाकानां रसाः साङ्ग्राहिकैर्युताः| <br /> |
− | व्यञ्जनार्थं प्रशस्यन्ते भोज्यार्थं रक्तशालयः||१३२|| | + | व्यञ्जनार्थं प्रशस्यन्ते भोज्यार्थं रक्तशालयः||१३२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्थिरादिपञ्चमूलेन पाने शस्तं शृतं जलम्| | + | स्थिरादिपञ्चमूलेन पाने शस्तं शृतं जलम्| <br /> |
− | तक्रं सुरा सचुक्रीका दाडिमस्याथवा रसः||१३३|| | + | तक्रं सुरा सचुक्रीका दाडिमस्याथवा रसः||१३३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | इत्युक्तं भिन्नशकृतां दीपनं ग्राहि भेषजम्|१३४| | + | इत्युक्तं भिन्नशकृतां दीपनं ग्राहि भेषजम्|१३४| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | prāyēṇōpahatāgnitvāt sapicchamatisāryatē| | + | prāyēṇōpahatāgnitvāt sapicchamatisāryatē| <br /> |
− | prāpnōti cāsyavairasyaṁ na cānnamabhinandati||123|| | + | prāpnōti cāsyavairasyaṁ na cānnamabhinandati||123|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasyāgnidīpanān yōgānatīsāranibarhaṇān| | + | tasyāgnidīpanān yōgānatīsāranibarhaṇān| <br /> |
− | vaktraśuddhikarān kuryādarucipratibādhakān||124|| | + | vaktraśuddhikarān kuryādarucipratibādhakān||124|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sanāgarānindrayavān pāyayēttaṇḍulāmbunā| | + | sanāgarānindrayavān pāyayēttaṇḍulāmbunā| <br /> |
− | siddhāṁ yavāgūṁ jīrṇē ca cāṅgērītakradāḍimaiḥ||125|| | + | siddhāṁ yavāgūṁ jīrṇē ca cāṅgērītakradāḍimaiḥ||125|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pāṭhā bilvaṁ yamānī ca pātavyaṁ takrasaṁyutam| | + | pāṭhā bilvaṁ yamānī ca pātavyaṁ takrasaṁyutam| <br /> |
− | durālabhā śr̥ṅgavēraṁ pāṭhā ca surayā saha||126|| | + | durālabhā śr̥ṅgavēraṁ pāṭhā ca surayā saha||126|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jambvāmramadhyaṁ bilvaṁ ca sakapitthaṁ sanāgaram| | + | jambvāmramadhyaṁ bilvaṁ ca sakapitthaṁ sanāgaram| <br /> |
− | pēyāmaṇḍēna pātavyamatīsāranivr̥ttayē||127|| | + | pēyāmaṇḍēna pātavyamatīsāranivr̥ttayē||127|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ētānēva ca yōgāṁstrīn pāṭhādīn kārayēt khaḍān| | + | ētānēva ca yōgāṁstrīn pāṭhādīn kārayēt khaḍān| <br /> |
− | sasūpyadhānyānsasnēhān sāmlānsaṅgrahaṇān param||128|| | + | sasūpyadhānyānsasnēhān sāmlānsaṅgrahaṇān param||128|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vētasārjunajambūnāṁ mr̥ṇālīkr̥ṣṇagandhayōḥ| | + | vētasārjunajambūnāṁ mr̥ṇālīkr̥ṣṇagandhayōḥ| <br /> |
− | śrīparṇyā madayantyāśca yūthikāyāśca pallavān||129|| | + | śrīparṇyā madayantyāśca yūthikāyāśca pallavān||129|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mātuluṅgasya dhātakyā dāḍimasya ca kārayēt| | + | mātuluṅgasya dhātakyā dāḍimasya ca kārayēt| <br /> |
− | snēhāmlalavaṇōpētān khaḍān sāṅgrāhikān param||130|| | + | snēhāmlalavaṇōpētān khaḍān sāṅgrāhikān param||130|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | cāṅgēryāścukrikāyāśca dugdhikāyāśca kārayēt| | + | cāṅgēryāścukrikāyāśca dugdhikāyāśca kārayēt| <br /> |
− | khaḍāndadhisarōpētān sasarpiṣkānsadāḍimān||131|| | + | khaḍāndadhisarōpētān sasarpiṣkānsadāḍimān||131|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | māṁsānāṁ laghupākānāṁ rasāḥ sāṅgrāhikairyutāḥ| | + | māṁsānāṁ laghupākānāṁ rasāḥ sāṅgrāhikairyutāḥ| <br /> |
− | vyañjanārthaṁ praśasyantē bhōjyārthaṁ raktaśālayaḥ||132|| | + | vyañjanārthaṁ praśasyantē bhōjyārthaṁ raktaśālayaḥ||132|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sthirādipañcamūlēna pānē śastaṁ śr̥taṁ jalam| | + | sthirādipañcamūlēna pānē śastaṁ śr̥taṁ jalam| <br /> |
− | takraṁ surā sacukrīkā dāḍimasyāthavā rasaḥ||133|| | + | takraṁ surā sacukrīkā dāḍimasyāthavā rasaḥ||133|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ityuktaṁ bhinnaśakr̥tāṁ dīpanaṁ grāhi bhēṣajam|134| | + | ityuktaṁ bhinnaśakr̥tāṁ dīpanaṁ grāhi bhēṣajam|134| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prAyeNopahatAgnitvAt sapicchamatisAryate| | + | prAyeNopahatAgnitvAt sapicchamatisAryate| <br /> |
− | prApnoti cAsyavairasyaM na cAnnamabhinandati||123|| | + | prApnoti cAsyavairasyaM na cAnnamabhinandati||123|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tasyAgnidIpanAn yogAnatIsAranibarhaNAn| | + | tasyAgnidIpanAn yogAnatIsAranibarhaNAn| <br /> |
− | vaktrashuddhikarAn kuryAdarucipratibAdhakAn||124|| | + | vaktrashuddhikarAn kuryAdarucipratibAdhakAn||124|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sanAgarAnindrayavAn pAyayettaNDulAmbunA| | + | sanAgarAnindrayavAn pAyayettaNDulAmbunA| <br /> |
− | siddhAM yavAgUM jIrNe ca cA~ggerItakradADimaiH||125|| | + | siddhAM yavAgUM jIrNe ca cA~ggerItakradADimaiH||125|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pAThA bilvaM yamAnI ca pAtavyaM takrasaMyutam| | + | pAThA bilvaM yamAnI ca pAtavyaM takrasaMyutam| <br /> |
− | durAlabhA shRu~ggaveraM pAThA ca surayA saha||126|| | + | durAlabhA shRu~ggaveraM pAThA ca surayA saha||126|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jambvAmramadhyaM bilvaM ca sakapitthaM sanAgaram| | + | jambvAmramadhyaM bilvaM ca sakapitthaM sanAgaram| <br /> |
− | peyAmaNDena pAtavyamatIsAranivRuttaye||127|| | + | peyAmaNDena pAtavyamatIsAranivRuttaye||127|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | etAneva ca yogAMstrIn pAThAdIn kArayet khaDAn| | + | etAneva ca yogAMstrIn pAThAdIn kArayet khaDAn| <br /> |
− | sasUpyadhAnyAnsasnehAn [2] sAmlAnsa~ggrahaNAn param||128|| | + | sasUpyadhAnyAnsasnehAn [2] sAmlAnsa~ggrahaNAn param||128|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vetasArjunajambUnAM mRuNAlIkRuShNagandhayoH| | + | vetasArjunajambUnAM mRuNAlIkRuShNagandhayoH| <br /> |
− | shrIparNyA madayantyAshca yUthikAyAshca pallavAn||129|| | + | shrIparNyA madayantyAshca yUthikAyAshca pallavAn||129|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAtulu~ggasya dhAtakyA dADimasya ca kArayet| | + | mAtulu~ggasya dhAtakyA dADimasya ca kArayet| <br /> |
− | snehAmlalavaNopetAn khaDAn sA~ggrAhikAn param||130|| | + | snehAmlalavaNopetAn khaDAn sA~ggrAhikAn param||130|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | cA~ggeryAshcukrikAyAshca dugdhikAyAshca kArayet| | + | cA~ggeryAshcukrikAyAshca dugdhikAyAshca kArayet| <br /> |
− | khaDAndadhisaropetAn sasarpiShkAnsadADimAn||131|| | + | khaDAndadhisaropetAn sasarpiShkAnsadADimAn||131|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAMsAnAM laghupAkAnAM rasAH sA~ggrAhikairyutAH| | + | mAMsAnAM laghupAkAnAM rasAH sA~ggrAhikairyutAH| <br /> |
− | vya~jjanArthaM prashasyante bhojyArthaM raktashAlayaH||132|| | + | vya~jjanArthaM prashasyante bhojyArthaM raktashAlayaH||132|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sthirAdipa~jcamUlena pAne shastaM shRutaM jalam| | + | sthirAdipa~jcamUlena pAne shastaM shRutaM jalam| <br /> |
− | takraM surA sacukrIkA dADimasyAthavA rasaH||133|| | + | takraM surA sacukrIkA dADimasyAthavA rasaH||133|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ityuktaM bhinnashakRutAM dIpanaM grAhi bheShajam|134| | + | ityuktaM bhinnashakRutAM dIpanaM grAhi bheShajam|134| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| *Due to the impairement of ''agni'', diarrhea accompanied with mucus occurs in patients of ''rajayakshma''. Further distaste in the mouth (''asyavairasya'') and aversion towards food occurs. The following recipes to stimulate digestion, treat diarrhea, cleanse up mouth to enhance taste and counteract anorexia are described. ''Indrayava'' (Wrightia tinctoria) with ''nagara'' (zingiber officinale) admixed with ''tandulambu'' (rice water), and ''yavagu'' (thick gruel) cooked along with ''changeri'' (Oxalis corniculata), butter-milk, and pomegranate (punica granatum) | | *Due to the impairement of ''agni'', diarrhea accompanied with mucus occurs in patients of ''rajayakshma''. Further distaste in the mouth (''asyavairasya'') and aversion towards food occurs. The following recipes to stimulate digestion, treat diarrhea, cleanse up mouth to enhance taste and counteract anorexia are described. ''Indrayava'' (Wrightia tinctoria) with ''nagara'' (zingiber officinale) admixed with ''tandulambu'' (rice water), and ''yavagu'' (thick gruel) cooked along with ''changeri'' (Oxalis corniculata), butter-milk, and pomegranate (punica granatum) |
Line 1,418: |
Line 1,533: |
| | | |
| ==== Formulations for treatment of anorexia ==== | | ==== Formulations for treatment of anorexia ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | परं मुखस्य वैरस्यनाशनं रोचनं शृणु [३] ||१३४|| | + | परं मुखस्य वैरस्यनाशनं रोचनं शृणु [३] ||१३४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | द्वौ कालौ दन्तपवनं भक्षयेन्मुखधावनम्| | + | द्वौ कालौ दन्तपवनं भक्षयेन्मुखधावनम्| <br /> |
− | तद्वत् प्रक्षालयेदास्यं धारयेत् कवलग्रहान्||१३५|| | + | तद्वत् प्रक्षालयेदास्यं धारयेत् कवलग्रहान्||१३५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पिबेद्धूमं ततो मृष्टमद्याद्दीपनपाचनम्| | + | पिबेद्धूमं ततो मृष्टमद्याद्दीपनपाचनम्| <br /> |
− | भेषजं पानमन्नं च हितमिष्टोपकल्पितम्||१३६|| | + | भेषजं पानमन्नं च हितमिष्टोपकल्पितम्||१३६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | त्वङ्मुस्तमेला धान्यानि मुस्तमामलकं त्वचम्| | + | त्वङ्मुस्तमेला धान्यानि मुस्तमामलकं त्वचम्| <br /> |
− | दार्वीत्वचो यवानी च तेजोह्वा पिप्पली तथा||१३७|| | + | दार्वीत्वचो यवानी च तेजोह्वा पिप्पली तथा||१३७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यवानी तिन्तिडीकं च पञ्चैते मुखधावनाः| | + | यवानी तिन्तिडीकं च पञ्चैते मुखधावनाः| <br /> |
− | श्लोकपादेष्वभिहिता रोचना मुखशोधनाः||१३८|| | + | श्लोकपादेष्वभिहिता रोचना मुखशोधनाः||१३८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | गुटिकां धारयेदास्ये चूर्णैर्वा शोधयेन्मुखम्| | + | गुटिकां धारयेदास्ये चूर्णैर्वा शोधयेन्मुखम्| <br /> |
− | एषामालोडितानां वा धारयेत् कवलग्रहान्||१३९|| | + | एषामालोडितानां वा धारयेत् कवलग्रहान्||१३९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सुरामाध्वीकसीधूनां तैलस्य मधुसर्पिषोः| | + | सुरामाध्वीकसीधूनां तैलस्य मधुसर्पिषोः| <br /> |
− | कवलान् धारयेदिष्टान् क्षीरस्येक्षुरसस्य च||१४०|| | + | कवलान् धारयेदिष्टान् क्षीरस्येक्षुरसस्य च||१४०||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | paraṁ mukhasya vairasyanāśanaṁ rōcanaṁ śr̥ṇu [3] ||134|| | + | paraṁ mukhasya vairasyanāśanaṁ rōcanaṁ śr̥ṇu [3] ||134|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dvau kālau dantapavanaṁ bhakṣayēnmukhadhāvanam| | + | dvau kālau dantapavanaṁ bhakṣayēnmukhadhāvanam| <br /> |
− | tadvat prakṣālayēdāsyaṁ dhārayēt kavalagrahān||135|| | + | tadvat prakṣālayēdāsyaṁ dhārayēt kavalagrahān||135|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pibēddhūmaṁ tatō mr̥ṣṭamadyāddīpanapācanam| | + | pibēddhūmaṁ tatō mr̥ṣṭamadyāddīpanapācanam| <br /> |
− | bhēṣajaṁ pānamannaṁ ca hitamiṣṭōpakalpitam||136|| | + | bhēṣajaṁ pānamannaṁ ca hitamiṣṭōpakalpitam||136|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tvaṅmustamēlā dhānyāni mustamāmalakaṁ tvacam| | + | tvaṅmustamēlā dhānyāni mustamāmalakaṁ tvacam| <br /> |
− | dārvītvacō yavānī ca tējōhvā pippalī tathā||137|| | + | dārvītvacō yavānī ca tējōhvā pippalī tathā||137|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavānī tintiḍīkaṁ ca pañcaitē mukhadhāvanāḥ| | + | yavānī tintiḍīkaṁ ca pañcaitē mukhadhāvanāḥ| <br /> |
− | ślōkapādēṣvabhihitā rōcanā mukhaśōdhanāḥ||138|| | + | ślōkapādēṣvabhihitā rōcanā mukhaśōdhanāḥ||138|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | guṭikāṁ dhārayēdāsyē cūrṇairvā śōdhayēnmukham| | + | guṭikāṁ dhārayēdāsyē cūrṇairvā śōdhayēnmukham| <br /> |
− | ēṣāmālōḍitānāṁ vā dhārayēt kavalagrahān||139|| | + | ēṣāmālōḍitānāṁ vā dhārayēt kavalagrahān||139|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | surāmādhvīkasīdhūnāṁ tailasya madhusarpiṣōḥ| | + | surāmādhvīkasīdhūnāṁ tailasya madhusarpiṣōḥ| <br /> |
− | kavalān dhārayēdiṣṭān kṣīrasyēkṣurasasya ca||140|| | + | kavalān dhārayēdiṣṭān kṣīrasyēkṣurasasya ca||140||<br /> |
| | | |
− | paraM mukhasya vairasyanAshanaM rocanaM shRuNu [3] ||134|| | + | paraM mukhasya vairasyanAshanaM rocanaM shRuNu [3] ||134|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dvau kAlau dantapavanaM bhakShayenmukhadhAvanam| | + | dvau kAlau dantapavanaM bhakShayenmukhadhAvanam| <br /> |
− | tadvat prakShAlayedAsyaM dhArayet kavalagrahAn||135|| | + | tadvat prakShAlayedAsyaM dhArayet kavalagrahAn||135|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pibeddhUmaM tato mRuShTamadyAddIpanapAcanam| | + | pibeddhUmaM tato mRuShTamadyAddIpanapAcanam| <br /> |
− | bheShajaM pAnamannaM ca hitamiShTopakalpitam||136|| | + | bheShajaM pAnamannaM ca hitamiShTopakalpitam||136|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tva~gmustamelA dhAnyAni mustamAmalakaM tvacam| | + | tva~gmustamelA dhAnyAni mustamAmalakaM tvacam| <br /> |
− | dArvItvaco yavAnI ca tejohvA pippalI tathA||137|| | + | dArvItvaco yavAnI ca tejohvA pippalI tathA||137|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavAnI tintiDIkaM ca pa~jcaite mukhadhAvanAH| | + | yavAnI tintiDIkaM ca pa~jcaite mukhadhAvanAH| <br /> |
− | shlokapAdeShvabhihitA rocanA mukhashodhanAH||138|| | + | shlokapAdeShvabhihitA rocanA mukhashodhanAH||138|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | guTikAM dhArayedAsye cUrNairvA shodhayenmukham| | + | guTikAM dhArayedAsye cUrNairvA shodhayenmukham| <br /> |
− | eShAmAloDitAnAM vA dhArayet kavalagrahAn||139|| | + | eShAmAloDitAnAM vA dhArayet kavalagrahAn||139|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | surAmAdhvIkasIdhUnAM tailasya madhusarpiShoH| | + | surAmAdhvIkasIdhUnAM tailasya madhusarpiShoH| <br /> |
− | kavalAn dhArayediShTAn kShIrasyekShurasasya ca||140|| | + | kavalAn dhArayediShTAn kShIrasyekShurasasya ca||140||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Now, hear this description of remedies for the removal of distaste in the mouth and for enhancing appetite. These are as follows: | | Now, hear this description of remedies for the removal of distaste in the mouth and for enhancing appetite. These are as follows: |
Line 1,488: |
Line 1,606: |
| | | |
| ==== ''Yavani shadava'' formulation ==== | | ==== ''Yavani shadava'' formulation ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | यवानीं तिन्तिडीकं च नागरं साम्लवेतसम्| | + | यवानीं तिन्तिडीकं च नागरं साम्लवेतसम्| <br /> |
− | दाडिमं बदरं चाम्लं कार्षिकं चोपकल्पयेत्||१४१|| | + | दाडिमं बदरं चाम्लं कार्षिकं चोपकल्पयेत्||१४१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | धान्यसौवर्चलाजाजीवराङ्गं चार्धकार्षिकम्| | + | धान्यसौवर्चलाजाजीवराङ्गं चार्धकार्षिकम्| <br /> |
− | पिप्पलीनां शतं चैकं द्वे शते मरिचस्य च||१४२|| | + | पिप्पलीनां शतं चैकं द्वे शते मरिचस्य च||१४२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | शर्करायाश्च चत्वारि पलान्येकत्र चूर्णयेत्| | + | शर्करायाश्च चत्वारि पलान्येकत्र चूर्णयेत्| <br /> |
− | जिह्वाविशोधनं हृद्यं तच्चूर्णं भक्तरोचनम्||१४३|| | + | जिह्वाविशोधनं हृद्यं तच्चूर्णं भक्तरोचनम्||१४३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | हृत्प्लीहपार्श्वशूलघ्नं विबन्धानाहनाशनम्| | + | हृत्प्लीहपार्श्वशूलघ्नं विबन्धानाहनाशनम्| <br /> |
− | कासश्वासहरं ग्राहि ग्रहण्यर्शोविकारनुत्||१४४|| | + | कासश्वासहरं ग्राहि ग्रहण्यर्शोविकारनुत्||१४४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | इति यवानीषाडवम् | + | इति यवानीषाडवम् <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | yavānīṁ tintiḍīkaṁ ca nāgaraṁ sāmlavētasam| | + | yavānīṁ tintiḍīkaṁ ca nāgaraṁ sāmlavētasam| <br /> |
− | dāḍimaṁ badaraṁ cāmlaṁ kārṣikaṁ cōpakalpayēt||141|| | + | dāḍimaṁ badaraṁ cāmlaṁ kārṣikaṁ cōpakalpayēt||141|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dhānyasauvarcalājājīvarāṅgaṁ cārdhakārṣikam| | + | dhānyasauvarcalājājīvarāṅgaṁ cārdhakārṣikam| <br /> |
− | pippalīnāṁ śataṁ caikaṁ dvē śatē maricasya ca||142|| | + | pippalīnāṁ śataṁ caikaṁ dvē śatē maricasya ca||142|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śarkarāyāśca catvāri palānyēkatra cūrṇayēt| | + | śarkarāyāśca catvāri palānyēkatra cūrṇayēt| <br /> |
− | jihvāviśōdhanaṁ hr̥dyaṁ taccūrṇaṁ bhaktarōcanam||143|| | + | jihvāviśōdhanaṁ hr̥dyaṁ taccūrṇaṁ bhaktarōcanam||143|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | hr̥tplīhapārśvaśūlaghnaṁ vibandhānāhanāśanam| | + | hr̥tplīhapārśvaśūlaghnaṁ vibandhānāhanāśanam| <br /> |
− | kāsaśvāsaharaṁ grāhi grahaṇyarśōvikāranut||144|| | + | kāsaśvāsaharaṁ grāhi grahaṇyarśōvikāranut||144|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti yavānīṣāḍavam | + | iti yavānīṣāḍavam <br /> |
| | | |
− | yavAnIM tintiDIkaM ca nAgaraM sAmlavetasam| | + | yavAnIM tintiDIkaM ca nAgaraM sAmlavetasam| <br /> |
− | dADimaM badaraM cAmlaM kArShikaM copakalpayet||141|| | + | dADimaM badaraM cAmlaM kArShikaM copakalpayet||141|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | dhAnyasauvarcalAjAjIvarA~ggaM cArdhakArShikam| | + | dhAnyasauvarcalAjAjIvarA~ggaM cArdhakArShikam| <br /> |
− | pippalInAM shataM caikaM dve shate maricasya ca||142|| | + | pippalInAM shataM caikaM dve shate maricasya ca||142|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sharkarAyAshca catvAri palAnyekatra cUrNayet| | + | sharkarAyAshca catvAri palAnyekatra cUrNayet| <br /> |
− | jihvAvishodhanaM hRudyaM taccUrNaM bhaktarocanam||143|| | + | jihvAvishodhanaM hRudyaM taccUrNaM bhaktarocanam||143|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | hRutplIhapArshvashUlaghnaM vibandhAnAhanAshanam| | + | hRutplIhapArshvashUlaghnaM vibandhAnAhanAshanam| <br /> |
− | kAsashvAsaharaM grAhi grahaNyarshovikAranut||144|| | + | kAsashvAsaharaM grAhi grahaNyarshovikAranut||144|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti yavAnIShADavam | + | iti yavAnIShADavam <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Bishop’s weed, tamarind, dry ginger, country sorrel, pomegranate, sour jujube - take one ''tola'' each of these and half ''tolas'' of coriander, rock-salt, cumin seeds, cinnamon, one hundred pieces of long pepper, 200 ebony pepper grains and 16 ''tolas'' of sugar: all these should be powdered and commixed together. This powder is tongue-detergent, cordial, and refreshing, curative of pain in the stomach, splenic region and flanks, and remedies constipation, tympanitis, cough and dyspnea. It is an astringent and is curative of assimilative disorders and hemorrhoids. Thus has been described the ''shadava'' preparation of bishop’s weed. [141-144] | | Bishop’s weed, tamarind, dry ginger, country sorrel, pomegranate, sour jujube - take one ''tola'' each of these and half ''tolas'' of coriander, rock-salt, cumin seeds, cinnamon, one hundred pieces of long pepper, 200 ebony pepper grains and 16 ''tolas'' of sugar: all these should be powdered and commixed together. This powder is tongue-detergent, cordial, and refreshing, curative of pain in the stomach, splenic region and flanks, and remedies constipation, tympanitis, cough and dyspnea. It is an astringent and is curative of assimilative disorders and hemorrhoids. Thus has been described the ''shadava'' preparation of bishop’s weed. [141-144] |
| | | |
| ==== ''Talisadi'' formulation ==== | | ==== ''Talisadi'' formulation ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | तालीशपत्रं मरिचं नागरं पिप्पली शुभा| | + | तालीशपत्रं मरिचं नागरं पिप्पली शुभा| <br /> |
− | यथोत्तरं भागवृद्ध्या त्वगेले चार्धभागिके||१४५|| | + | यथोत्तरं भागवृद्ध्या त्वगेले चार्धभागिके||१४५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पिप्पल्यष्टगुणा चात्र प्रदेया सितशर्करा| | + | पिप्पल्यष्टगुणा चात्र प्रदेया सितशर्करा| <br /> |
− | कासश्वासारुचिहरं तच्चूर्णं दीपनं परम्||१४६|| | + | कासश्वासारुचिहरं तच्चूर्णं दीपनं परम्||१४६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | हृत्पाण्डुग्रहणीदोषशोषप्लीहज्वरापहम्| | + | हृत्पाण्डुग्रहणीदोषशोषप्लीहज्वरापहम्| <br /> |
− | वम्यतीसारशूलघ्नं मूढवातानुलोमनम्||१४७|| | + | वम्यतीसारशूलघ्नं मूढवातानुलोमनम्||१४७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | कल्पयेद्गुटिकां चैतच्चूर्णं पक्त्वा सितोपलाम्| | + | कल्पयेद्गुटिकां चैतच्चूर्णं पक्त्वा सितोपलाम्| <br /> |
− | गुटिका ह्यग्निसंयोगाच्चूर्णाल्लघुतराः स्मृताः||१४८|| | + | गुटिका ह्यग्निसंयोगाच्चूर्णाल्लघुतराः स्मृताः||१४८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | इति तालीशाद्यं चूर्णं गुटिकाश्च | + | इति तालीशाद्यं चूर्णं गुटिकाश्च <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | tālīśapatraṁ maricaṁ nāgaraṁ pippalī śubhā| | + | tālīśapatraṁ maricaṁ nāgaraṁ pippalī śubhā| <br /> |
− | yathōttaraṁ bhāgavr̥ddhyā tvagēlē cārdhabhāgikē||145|| | + | yathōttaraṁ bhāgavr̥ddhyā tvagēlē cārdhabhāgikē||145|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pippalyaṣṭaguṇā cātra pradēyā sitaśarkarā| | + | pippalyaṣṭaguṇā cātra pradēyā sitaśarkarā| <br /> |
− | kāsaśvāsāruciharaṁ taccūrṇaṁ dīpanaṁ param||146|| | + | kāsaśvāsāruciharaṁ taccūrṇaṁ dīpanaṁ param||146|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | hr̥tpāṇḍugrahaṇīdōṣaśōṣaplīhajvarāpaham| | + | hr̥tpāṇḍugrahaṇīdōṣaśōṣaplīhajvarāpaham| <br /> |
− | vamyatīsāraśūlaghnaṁ mūḍhavātānulōmanam||147|| | + | vamyatīsāraśūlaghnaṁ mūḍhavātānulōmanam||147|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kalpayēdguṭikāṁ caitaccūrṇaṁ paktvā sitōpalām| | + | kalpayēdguṭikāṁ caitaccūrṇaṁ paktvā sitōpalām| <br /> |
− | guṭikā hyagnisaṁyōgāccūrṇāllaghutarāḥ smr̥tāḥ||148|| | + | guṭikā hyagnisaṁyōgāccūrṇāllaghutarāḥ smr̥tāḥ||148|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti tālīśādyaṁ cūrṇaṁ guṭikāśca | + | iti tālīśādyaṁ cūrṇaṁ guṭikāśca <br /> |
| | | |
− | tAlIshapatraM maricaM nAgaraM pippalI shubhA| | + | tAlIshapatraM maricaM nAgaraM pippalI shubhA| <br /> |
− | yathottaraM bhAgavRuddhyA tvagele cArdhabhAgike||145|| | + | yathottaraM bhAgavRuddhyA tvagele cArdhabhAgike||145|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pippalyaShTaguNA cAtra pradeyA sitasharkarA| | + | pippalyaShTaguNA cAtra pradeyA sitasharkarA| <br /> |
− | kAsashvAsAruciharaM taccUrNaM dIpanaM param||146|| | + | kAsashvAsAruciharaM taccUrNaM dIpanaM param||146|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | hRutpANDugrahaNIdoShashoShaplIhajvarApaham| | + | hRutpANDugrahaNIdoShashoShaplIhajvarApaham| <br /> |
− | vamyatIsArashUlaghnaM mUDhavAtAnulomanam||147|| | + | vamyatIsArashUlaghnaM mUDhavAtAnulomanam||147|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kalpayedguTikAM caitaccUrNaM paktvA sitopalAm| | + | kalpayedguTikAM caitaccUrNaM paktvA sitopalAm| <br /> |
− | guTikA hyagnisaMyogAccUrNAllaghutarAH smRutAH||148|| | + | guTikA hyagnisaMyogAccUrNAllaghutarAH smRutAH||148|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iti tAlIshAdyaM cUrNaM guTikAshca | + | iti tAlIshAdyaM cUrNaM guTikAshca <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Take Himalayan silver fir, ebony pepper, dry ginger and long pepper and in proportions of 1,2,3 and 4 chunks/pieces respectively; cinnamon and cardamom in the proportion of ½ part each and white sugar eight times the quantity of long pepper (32 components). This powder is curative of cough, dyspnea and anorexia and is an excellent digestive stimulant, alleviative of stomach disorders anemia, assimilation disorders, ''rajayakshma,'' splenic disorders, fever, regurgitating, diarrhea, colic and alleviate aggravated ''vata''. Pills can also be prepared from this formulation after processing it with sugar water on fire. The pills are light to digest because of they are processed on fire. [145-148] | | Take Himalayan silver fir, ebony pepper, dry ginger and long pepper and in proportions of 1,2,3 and 4 chunks/pieces respectively; cinnamon and cardamom in the proportion of ½ part each and white sugar eight times the quantity of long pepper (32 components). This powder is curative of cough, dyspnea and anorexia and is an excellent digestive stimulant, alleviative of stomach disorders anemia, assimilation disorders, ''rajayakshma,'' splenic disorders, fever, regurgitating, diarrhea, colic and alleviate aggravated ''vata''. Pills can also be prepared from this formulation after processing it with sugar water on fire. The pills are light to digest because of they are processed on fire. [145-148] |
| | | |
| ==== Importance of meat in emaciation ==== | | ==== Importance of meat in emaciation ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | शुष्यतां क्षीणमांसानां कल्पितानि विधानवित्| | + | शुष्यतां क्षीणमांसानां कल्पितानि विधानवित्| <br /> |
− | दद्यान्मांसादमांसानि बृंहणानि विशेषतः||१४९|| | + | दद्यान्मांसादमांसानि बृंहणानि विशेषतः||१४९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | शोषिणे बार्हिणं दद्याद्बर्हिशब्देन चापरान्| | + | शोषिणे बार्हिणं दद्याद्बर्हिशब्देन चापरान्| <br /> |
− | गृध्रानुलूकांश्चाषांश्च विधिवत् सूपकल्पितान्||१५०|| | + | गृध्रानुलूकांश्चाषांश्च विधिवत् सूपकल्पितान्||१५०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | काकांस्तित्तिरिशब्देन वर्मिशब्देन चोरगान्| | + | काकांस्तित्तिरिशब्देन वर्मिशब्देन चोरगान्| <br /> |
− | भृष्टान् मत्स्यान्त्रशब्देन दद्याद्गण्डूपदानपि||१५१|| | + | भृष्टान् मत्स्यान्त्रशब्देन दद्याद्गण्डूपदानपि||१५१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | लोपाकान् स्थूलनकुलान् बिडालांश्चोपकल्पितान्| | + | लोपाकान् स्थूलनकुलान् बिडालांश्चोपकल्पितान्| <br /> |
− | शृगालशावांश्च भिषक् शशशब्देन दापयेत्||१५२|| | + | शृगालशावांश्च भिषक् शशशब्देन दापयेत्||१५२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सिंहानृक्षांस्तरक्षूंश्च व्याघ्रानेवंविधांस्तथा| | + | सिंहानृक्षांस्तरक्षूंश्च व्याघ्रानेवंविधांस्तथा| <br /> |
− | मांसादान् मृगशब्देन दद्यान्मांसाभिवृद्धये||१५३|| | + | मांसादान् मृगशब्देन दद्यान्मांसाभिवृद्धये||१५३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | गजखड्गितुरङ्गाणां वेशवारीकृतं भिषक्| | + | गजखड्गितुरङ्गाणां वेशवारीकृतं भिषक्| <br /> |
− | दद्यान्महिषशब्देन मांसं मांसाभिवृद्धये||१५४|| | + | दद्यान्महिषशब्देन मांसं मांसाभिवृद्धये||१५४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मांसेनोपचिताङ्गानां मांसं मांसकरं परम्| | + | मांसेनोपचिताङ्गानां मांसं मांसकरं परम्| <br /> |
− | तीक्ष्णोष्णलाघवाच्छस्तं विशेषान्मृगपक्षिणाम्||१५५|| | + | तीक्ष्णोष्णलाघवाच्छस्तं विशेषान्मृगपक्षिणाम्||१५५|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | śuṣyatāṁ kṣīṇamāṁsānāṁ kalpitāni vidhānavit| | + | śuṣyatāṁ kṣīṇamāṁsānāṁ kalpitāni vidhānavit| <br /> |
− | dadyānmāṁsādamāṁsāni br̥ṁhaṇāni viśēṣataḥ||149|| | + | dadyānmāṁsādamāṁsāni br̥ṁhaṇāni viśēṣataḥ||149|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | śōṣiṇē bārhiṇaṁ dadyādbarhiśabdēna cāparān| | + | śōṣiṇē bārhiṇaṁ dadyādbarhiśabdēna cāparān| <br /> |
− | gr̥dhrānulūkāṁścāṣāṁśca vidhivat sūpakalpitān||150|| | + | gr̥dhrānulūkāṁścāṣāṁśca vidhivat sūpakalpitān||150|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kākāṁstittiriśabdēna varmiśabdēna cōragān| | + | kākāṁstittiriśabdēna varmiśabdēna cōragān| <br /> |
− | bhr̥ṣṭān matsyāntraśabdēna dadyādgaṇḍūpadānapi||151|| | + | bhr̥ṣṭān matsyāntraśabdēna dadyādgaṇḍūpadānapi||151|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lōpākān sthūlanakulān biḍālāṁścōpakalpitān| | + | lōpākān sthūlanakulān biḍālāṁścōpakalpitān| <br /> |
− | śr̥gālaśāvāṁśca bhiṣak śaśaśabdēna dāpayēt||152|| | + | śr̥gālaśāvāṁśca bhiṣak śaśaśabdēna dāpayēt||152|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | siṁhānr̥kṣāṁstarakṣūṁśca vyāghrānēvaṁvidhāṁstathā| | + | siṁhānr̥kṣāṁstarakṣūṁśca vyāghrānēvaṁvidhāṁstathā| <br /> |
− | māṁsādān mr̥gaśabdēna dadyānmāṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||153|| | + | māṁsādān mr̥gaśabdēna dadyānmāṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||153|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | gajakhaḍgituraṅgāṇāṁ vēśavārīkr̥taṁ bhiṣak| | + | gajakhaḍgituraṅgāṇāṁ vēśavārīkr̥taṁ bhiṣak| <br /> |
− | dadyānmahiṣaśabdēna māṁsaṁ māṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||154|| | + | dadyānmahiṣaśabdēna māṁsaṁ māṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||154|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | māṁsēnōpacitāṅgānāṁ māṁsaṁ māṁsakaraṁ param| | + | māṁsēnōpacitāṅgānāṁ māṁsaṁ māṁsakaraṁ param| <br /> |
− | tīkṣṇōṣṇalāghavācchastaṁ viśēṣānmr̥gapakṣiṇām||155|| | + | tīkṣṇōṣṇalāghavācchastaṁ viśēṣānmr̥gapakṣiṇām||155|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shuShyatAM kShINamAMsAnAM kalpitAni vidhAnavit| | + | shuShyatAM kShINamAMsAnAM kalpitAni vidhAnavit| <br /> |
− | dadyAnmAMsAdamAMsAni bRuMhaNAni visheShataH||149|| | + | dadyAnmAMsAdamAMsAni bRuMhaNAni visheShataH||149|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | shoShiNe bArhiNaM dadyAdbarhishabdena cAparAn| | + | shoShiNe bArhiNaM dadyAdbarhishabdena cAparAn| <br /> |
− | gRudhrAnulUkAMshcAShAMshca vidhivat sUpakalpitAn||150|| | + | gRudhrAnulUkAMshcAShAMshca vidhivat sUpakalpitAn||150|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kAkAMstittirishabdena varmishabdena coragAn| | + | kAkAMstittirishabdena varmishabdena coragAn| <br /> |
− | bhRuShTAn matsyAntrashabdena dadyAdgaNDUpadAnapi||151|| | + | bhRuShTAn matsyAntrashabdena dadyAdgaNDUpadAnapi||151|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | lopAkAn sthUlanakulAn biDAlAMshcopakalpitAn| | + | lopAkAn sthUlanakulAn biDAlAMshcopakalpitAn| <br /> |
− | shRugAlashAvAMshca bhiShak shashashabdena dApayet||152|| | + | shRugAlashAvAMshca bhiShak shashashabdena dApayet||152|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | siMhAnRukShAMstarakShUMshca vyAghrAnevaMvidhAMstathA| | + | siMhAnRukShAMstarakShUMshca vyAghrAnevaMvidhAMstathA| <br /> |
− | mAMsAdAn mRugashabdena dadyAnmAMsAbhivRuddhaye||153|| | + | mAMsAdAn mRugashabdena dadyAnmAMsAbhivRuddhaye||153|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | gajakhaDgitura~ggANAM veshavArIkRutaM bhiShak| | + | gajakhaDgitura~ggANAM veshavArIkRutaM bhiShak| <br /> |
− | dadyAnmahiShashabdena mAMsaM mAMsAbhivRuddhaye||154|| | + | dadyAnmahiShashabdena mAMsaM mAMsAbhivRuddhaye||154|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAMsenopacitA~ggAnAM mAMsaM mAMsakaraM param| | + | mAMsenopacitA~ggAnAM mAMsaM mAMsakaraM param| <br /> |
− | tIkShNoShNalAghavAcchastaM visheShAnmRugapakShiNAm||155|| | + | tIkShNoShNalAghavAcchastaM visheShAnmRugapakShiNAm||155|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The patient who are emaciated and depleted with ''mamsa dhatu'' (flesh), should be prescribed with dishes of the meats of carnivorous animals intended for special nourishment therapy. | | The patient who are emaciated and depleted with ''mamsa dhatu'' (flesh), should be prescribed with dishes of the meats of carnivorous animals intended for special nourishment therapy. |
Line 1,657: |
Line 1,784: |
| | | |
| ==== ''Jugupsa'' treatment (administration of medicine without telling the patient) ==== | | ==== ''Jugupsa'' treatment (administration of medicine without telling the patient) ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | मांसानि यान्यनभ्यासादनिष्टानि प्रयोजयेत्| | + | मांसानि यान्यनभ्यासादनिष्टानि प्रयोजयेत्| <br /> |
− | तेषूपधा, सुखं भोक्तुं तथा शक्यानि तानि हि||१५६|| | + | तेषूपधा, सुखं भोक्तुं तथा शक्यानि तानि हि||१५६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जानञ्जुगुप्सन्नैवाद्याज्जग्धं वा पुनरुल्लिखेत्| | + | जानञ्जुगुप्सन्नैवाद्याज्जग्धं वा पुनरुल्लिखेत्| <br /> |
− | तस्माच्छद्मोपसिद्धानि मांसान्येतानि दापयेत्||१५७|| | + | तस्माच्छद्मोपसिद्धानि मांसान्येतानि दापयेत्||१५७|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | māṁsāni yānyanabhyāsādaniṣṭāni prayōjayēt| | + | māṁsāni yānyanabhyāsādaniṣṭāni prayōjayēt| <br /> |
− | tēṣūpadhā, sukhaṁ bhōktuṁ tathā śakyāni tāni hi||156|| | + | tēṣūpadhā, sukhaṁ bhōktuṁ tathā śakyāni tāni hi||156||<br /> |
| | | |
− | jānañjugupsannaivādyājjagdhaṁ vā punarullikhēt| | + | jānañjugupsannaivādyājjagdhaṁ vā punarullikhēt| <br /> |
− | tasmācchadmōpasiddhāni māṁsānyētāni dāpayēt||157|| | + | tasmācchadmōpasiddhāni māṁsānyētāni dāpayēt||157|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAMsAni yAnyanabhyAsAdaniShTAni prayojayet| | + | mAMsAni yAnyanabhyAsAdaniShTAni prayojayet| <br /> |
− | teShUpadhA, sukhaM bhoktuM tathA shakyAni tAni hi||156|| | + | teShUpadhA, sukhaM bhoktuM tathA shakyAni tAni hi||156|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jAna~jjugupsannaivAdyAjjagdhaM vA punarullikhet| | + | jAna~jjugupsannaivAdyAjjagdhaM vA punarullikhet| <br /> |
− | tasmAcchadmopasiddhAni mAMsAnyetAni dApayet||157|| | + | tasmAcchadmopasiddhAni mAMsAnyetAni dApayet||157|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| When the patient is not used to consume meats and that are not relished, it may cause harm to patient. Then considering the benefit towards patient’s health, meat should be given in other forms or under dissimulated designations without telling the patient. If the patient comes to know that meat is being given to him, then he would not eat the meat or if eaten, would vomit it. (Hence, in these patients, the recepi should not be shared with patients). [156-157] | | When the patient is not used to consume meats and that are not relished, it may cause harm to patient. Then considering the benefit towards patient’s health, meat should be given in other forms or under dissimulated designations without telling the patient. If the patient comes to know that meat is being given to him, then he would not eat the meat or if eaten, would vomit it. (Hence, in these patients, the recepi should not be shared with patients). [156-157] |
| | | |
| ==== Best animal meats in ''rajayakshma'' ==== | | ==== Best animal meats in ''rajayakshma'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | बर्हितित्तिरिदक्षाणां हंसानां शूकरोष्ट्रयोः| | + | बर्हितित्तिरिदक्षाणां हंसानां शूकरोष्ट्रयोः| <br /> |
− | खरगोमहिषाणां च मांसं मांसकरं परम्||१५८|| | + | खरगोमहिषाणां च मांसं मांसकरं परम्||१५८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | योनिरष्टविधा चोक्ता मांसानामन्नपानिके| | + | योनिरष्टविधा चोक्ता मांसानामन्नपानिके| <br /> |
− | तां परीक्ष्य भिषग्विद्वान् दद्यान्मांसानि शोषिणे||१५९|| | + | तां परीक्ष्य भिषग्विद्वान् दद्यान्मांसानि शोषिणे||१५९|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | barhitittiridakṣāṇāṁ haṁsānāṁ śūkarōṣṭrayōḥ| | + | barhitittiridakṣāṇāṁ haṁsānāṁ śūkarōṣṭrayōḥ| <br /> |
− | kharagōmahiṣāṇāṁ ca māṁsaṁ māṁsakaraṁ param||158|| | + | kharagōmahiṣāṇāṁ ca māṁsaṁ māṁsakaraṁ param||158|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yōniraṣṭavidhā cōktā māṁsānāmannapānikē| | + | yōniraṣṭavidhā cōktā māṁsānāmannapānikē| <br /> |
− | tāṁ parīkṣya bhiṣagvidvān dadyānmāṁsāni śōṣiṇē||159|| | + | tāṁ parīkṣya bhiṣagvidvān dadyānmāṁsāni śōṣiṇē||159|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | barhitittiridakShANAM haMsAnAM shUkaroShTrayoH| | + | barhitittiridakShANAM haMsAnAM shUkaroShTrayoH| <br /> |
− | kharagomahiShANAM ca mAMsaM mAMsakaraM param||158|| | + | kharagomahiShANAM ca mAMsaM mAMsakaraM param||158|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yoniraShTavidhA coktA mAMsAnAmannapAnike| | + | yoniraShTavidhA coktA mAMsAnAmannapAnike| <br /> |
− | tAM parIkShya bhiShagvidvAn dadyAnmAMsAni shoShiNe||159|| | + | tAM parIkShya bhiShagvidvAn dadyAnmAMsAni shoShiNe||159|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The fleshes of peacock, partridge, chicken, swan, hog, camel, ass, bull, and buffalo are best to enhance flesh tissues in the patient. A wise physician should take meticulous note of the eight groups of creatures, described in the chapter on ‘eats and drinks’, and then cull the opportune flesh for the patient. [158-159] | | The fleshes of peacock, partridge, chicken, swan, hog, camel, ass, bull, and buffalo are best to enhance flesh tissues in the patient. A wise physician should take meticulous note of the eight groups of creatures, described in the chapter on ‘eats and drinks’, and then cull the opportune flesh for the patient. [158-159] |
| | | |
| ==== Types of meats for alleviation of specific ''dosha'' ==== | | ==== Types of meats for alleviation of specific ''dosha'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | प्रसहा भूशयानूपवारिजा वारिचारिणः| | + | प्रसहा भूशयानूपवारिजा वारिचारिणः| <br /> |
− | आहारार्थं प्रदातव्या मात्रया वातशोषिणे||१६०|| | + | आहारार्थं प्रदातव्या मात्रया वातशोषिणे||१६०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रतुदा विष्किराश्चैव धन्वजाश्च मृगद्विजाः| | + | प्रतुदा विष्किराश्चैव धन्वजाश्च मृगद्विजाः| <br /> |
− | कफपित्तपरीतानां प्रयोज्याः शोषरोगिणाम्||१६१|| | + | कफपित्तपरीतानां प्रयोज्याः शोषरोगिणाम्||१६१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | विधिवत्सूपसिद्धानि मनोज्ञानि मृदूनि च| | + | विधिवत्सूपसिद्धानि मनोज्ञानि मृदूनि च| <br /> |
− | रसवन्ति सुगन्धीनि मांसान्येतानि भक्षयेत्||१६२|| | + | रसवन्ति सुगन्धीनि मांसान्येतानि भक्षयेत्||१६२|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | prasahā bhūśayānūpavārijā vāricāriṇaḥ| | + | prasahā bhūśayānūpavārijā vāricāriṇaḥ| <br /> |
− | āhārārthaṁ pradātavyā mātrayā vātaśōṣiṇē||160|| | + | āhārārthaṁ pradātavyā mātrayā vātaśōṣiṇē||160|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | pratudā viṣkirāścaiva dhanvajāśca mr̥gadvijāḥ| | + | pratudā viṣkirāścaiva dhanvajāśca mr̥gadvijāḥ| <br /> |
− | kaphapittaparītānāṁ prayōjyāḥ śōṣarōgiṇām||161|| | + | kaphapittaparītānāṁ prayōjyāḥ śōṣarōgiṇām||161|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vidhivatsūpasiddhāni manōjñāni mr̥dūni ca| | + | vidhivatsūpasiddhāni manōjñāni mr̥dūni ca| <br /> |
− | rasavanti sugandhīni māṁsānyētāni bhakṣayēt||162|| | + | rasavanti sugandhīni māṁsānyētāni bhakṣayēt||162|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prasahA bhUshayAnUpavArijA vAricAriNaH| | + | prasahA bhUshayAnUpavArijA vAricAriNaH| <br /> |
− | AhArArthaM pradAtavyA mAtrayA vAtashoShiNe||160|| | + | AhArArthaM pradAtavyA mAtrayA vAtashoShiNe||160||<br /> |
| | | |
− | pratudA viShkirAshcaiva dhanvajAshca mRugadvijAH| | + | pratudA viShkirAshcaiva dhanvajAshca mRugadvijAH| <br /> |
− | kaphapittaparItAnAM prayojyAH shoSharogiNAm||161|| | + | kaphapittaparItAnAM prayojyAH shoSharogiNAm||161|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vidhivatsUpasiddhAni manoj~jAni mRudUni ca| | + | vidhivatsUpasiddhAni manoj~jAni mRudUni ca| <br /> |
− | rasavanti sugandhIni mAMsAnyetAni bhakShayet||162|| | + | rasavanti sugandhIni mAMsAnyetAni bhakShayet||162|| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The flesh of the tearer group of creatures , wet land and aquatic animals and wading birds should be given in large measures as food to one suffering from the ''vata'' dominance in ''rajayakshma''. The flesh of peckers, gallinaceous birds and ''jangala'' beasts and birds should be given to those consumptives who are predominantly affected with ''kapha'' and ''pitta''. After preparing these fleshes well in the prescribed manner and having rendered them soft, palatable, ambrosial and fragrant, they should be given to the ''rajayakshma'' patient. [160-162] | | The flesh of the tearer group of creatures , wet land and aquatic animals and wading birds should be given in large measures as food to one suffering from the ''vata'' dominance in ''rajayakshma''. The flesh of peckers, gallinaceous birds and ''jangala'' beasts and birds should be given to those consumptives who are predominantly affected with ''kapha'' and ''pitta''. After preparing these fleshes well in the prescribed manner and having rendered them soft, palatable, ambrosial and fragrant, they should be given to the ''rajayakshma'' patient. [160-162] |
| | | |
| ==== Prescription of wines in ''rajayakshma'' ==== | | ==== Prescription of wines in ''rajayakshma'' ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | मांसमेवाश्नतः शोषो माध्वीकं पिबतोऽपि च| | + | मांसमेवाश्नतः शोषो माध्वीकं पिबतोऽपि च| <br /> |
− | नियतानल्पचित्तस्य चिरं काये न तिष्ठति||१६३|| | + | नियतानल्पचित्तस्य चिरं काये न तिष्ठति||१६३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | वारुणीमण्डनित्यस्य बहिर्मार्जनसेविनः| | + | वारुणीमण्डनित्यस्य बहिर्मार्जनसेविनः| <br /> |
− | अविधारितवेगस्य यक्ष्मा न लभतेऽन्तरम्||१६४|| | + | अविधारितवेगस्य यक्ष्मा न लभतेऽन्तरम्||१६४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रसन्नां वारुणीं सीधुमरिष्टानासवान्मधु| | + | प्रसन्नां वारुणीं सीधुमरिष्टानासवान्मधु| <br /> |
− | यथार्हमनुपानार्थं पिबेन्मांसानि भक्षयन्||१६५|| | + | यथार्हमनुपानार्थं पिबेन्मांसानि भक्षयन्||१६५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मद्यं तैक्ष्ण्यौष्ण्यवैशद्यसूक्ष्मत्वात् स्रोतसां मुखम्| | + | मद्यं तैक्ष्ण्यौष्ण्यवैशद्यसूक्ष्मत्वात् स्रोतसां मुखम्| <br /> |
− | प्रमथ्य विवृणोत्याशु तन्मोक्षात् सप्त धातवः||१६६|| | + | प्रमथ्य विवृणोत्याशु तन्मोक्षात् सप्त धातवः||१६६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | पुष्यन्ति धातुपोषाच्च शीघ्रं शोषः प्रशाम्यति| | + | पुष्यन्ति धातुपोषाच्च शीघ्रं शोषः प्रशाम्यति| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | māṁsamēvāśnataḥ śōṣō mādhvīkaṁ pibatō'pi ca| | + | māṁsamēvāśnataḥ śōṣō mādhvīkaṁ pibatō'pi ca| <br /> |
− | niyatānalpacittasya ciraṁ kāyē na tiṣṭhati||163|| | + | niyatānalpacittasya ciraṁ kāyē na tiṣṭhati||163|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vāruṇīmaṇḍanityasya bahirmārjanasēvinaḥ| | + | vāruṇīmaṇḍanityasya bahirmārjanasēvinaḥ| <br /> |
− | avidhāritavēgasya yakṣmā na labhatē'ntaram||164|| | + | avidhāritavēgasya yakṣmā na labhatē'ntaram||164|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prasannāṁ vāruṇīṁ sīdhumariṣṭānāsavānmadhu| | + | prasannāṁ vāruṇīṁ sīdhumariṣṭānāsavānmadhu| <br /> |
− | yathārhamanupānārthaṁ pibēnmāṁsāni bhakṣayan||165|| | + | yathārhamanupānārthaṁ pibēnmāṁsāni bhakṣayan||165|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | madyaṁ taikṣṇyauṣṇyavaiśadyasūkṣmatvāt srōtasāṁ mukham| | + | madyaṁ taikṣṇyauṣṇyavaiśadyasūkṣmatvāt srōtasāṁ mukham| <br /> |
− | pramathya vivr̥ṇōtyāśu tanmōkṣāt sapta dhātavaḥ||166|| | + | pramathya vivr̥ṇōtyāśu tanmōkṣāt sapta dhātavaḥ||166|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | puṣyanti dhātupōṣācca śīghraṁ śōṣaḥ praśāmyati| | + | puṣyanti dhātupōṣācca śīghraṁ śōṣaḥ praśāmyati| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mAMsamevAshnataH shoSho mAdhvIkaM pibato~api ca| | + | mAMsamevAshnataH shoSho mAdhvIkaM pibato~api ca| <br /> |
− | niyatAnalpacittasya ciraM kAye na tiShThati||163|| | + | niyatAnalpacittasya ciraM kAye na tiShThati||163|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | vAruNImaNDanityasya bahirmArjanasevinaH| | + | vAruNImaNDanityasya bahirmArjanasevinaH| <br /> |
− | avidhAritavegasya yakShmA na labhate~antaram||164|| | + | avidhAritavegasya yakShmA na labhate~antaram||164|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | prasannAM vAruNIM sIdhumariShTAnAsavAnmadhu| | + | prasannAM vAruNIM sIdhumariShTAnAsavAnmadhu| <br /> |
− | yathArhamanupAnArthaM pibenmAMsAni bhakShayan||165|| | + | yathArhamanupAnArthaM pibenmAMsAni bhakShayan||165|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | madyaM taikShNyauShNyavaishadyasUkShmatvAt srotasAM mukham| | + | madyaM taikShNyauShNyavaishadyasUkShmatvAt srotasAM mukham| <br /> |
− | pramathya vivRuNotyAshu tanmokShAt sapta dhAtavaH||166|| | + | pramathya vivRuNotyAshu tanmokShAt sapta dhAtavaH||166|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | puShyanti dhAtupoShAcca shIghraM shoShaH prashAmyati| | + | puShyanti dhAtupoShAcca shIghraM shoShaH prashAmyati| <br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Only meat shall be consumed in ''rajayakshma'' with ''madhvika'' (wine prepared from honey). The disease does not persist long in one who is well disciplined and with good mental strength (control over mind), who daily drinks ''varuni'' wine, regularly follows the external cleansing of the body and who does not suppress the natural urges. | | Only meat shall be consumed in ''rajayakshma'' with ''madhvika'' (wine prepared from honey). The disease does not persist long in one who is well disciplined and with good mental strength (control over mind), who daily drinks ''varuni'' wine, regularly follows the external cleansing of the body and who does not suppress the natural urges. |
Line 1,780: |
Line 1,919: |
| | | |
| ==== Various ghee formulations ==== | | ==== Various ghee formulations ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | मांसादमांसस्वरसे सिद्धं सर्पिः प्रयोजयेत्||१६७|| | + | मांसादमांसस्वरसे सिद्धं सर्पिः प्रयोजयेत्||१६७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सक्षौद्रं, पयसा सिद्धं सर्पिर्दशगुणेन वा| | + | सक्षौद्रं, पयसा सिद्धं सर्पिर्दशगुणेन वा| <br /> |
− | सिद्धं मधुरकैर्द्रव्यैर्दशमूलकषायकैः||१६८|| | + | सिद्धं मधुरकैर्द्रव्यैर्दशमूलकषायकैः||१६८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | क्षीरमांसरसोपेतैर्घृतं शोषहरं परम्| | + | क्षीरमांसरसोपेतैर्घृतं शोषहरं परम्| <br /> |
− | पिप्पलीपिप्पलीमूलचव्यचित्रकनागरैः||१६९|| | + | पिप्पलीपिप्पलीमूलचव्यचित्रकनागरैः||१६९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सयावशूकैः सक्षीरैः स्रोतसां शोधनं घृतम्| | + | सयावशूकैः सक्षीरैः स्रोतसां शोधनं घृतम्| <br /> |
− | रास्नाबलागोक्षुरकस्थिरावर्षाभुसाधितम्||१७०|| | + | रास्नाबलागोक्षुरकस्थिरावर्षाभुसाधितम्||१७०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | जीवन्तीपिप्पलीगर्भं सक्षीरं शोषनुद्घृतम्| | + | जीवन्तीपिप्पलीगर्भं सक्षीरं शोषनुद्घृतम्| <br /> |
− | यवाग्वा वा पिबेन्मात्रां लिह्याद्वा मधुना सह||१७१|| | + | यवाग्वा वा पिबेन्मात्रां लिह्याद्वा मधुना सह||१७१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सिद्धानां सर्पिषामेषामद्यादन्नेन वा सह| | + | सिद्धानां सर्पिषामेषामद्यादन्नेन वा सह| <br /> |
− | शुष्यतामेष निर्दिष्टो विधिराभ्यवहारिकः||१७२|| | + | शुष्यतामेष निर्दिष्टो विधिराभ्यवहारिकः||१७२||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | māṁsādamāṁsasvarasē siddhaṁ sarpiḥ prayōjayēt||167|| | + | māṁsādamāṁsasvarasē siddhaṁ sarpiḥ prayōjayēt||167|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sakṣaudraṁ, payasā siddhaṁ sarpirdaśaguṇēna vā| | + | sakṣaudraṁ, payasā siddhaṁ sarpirdaśaguṇēna vā| <br /> |
− | siddhaṁ madhurakairdravyairdaśamūlakaṣāyakaiḥ||168|| | + | siddhaṁ madhurakairdravyairdaśamūlakaṣāyakaiḥ||168|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | kṣīramāṁsarasōpētairghr̥taṁ śōṣaharaṁ param| | + | kṣīramāṁsarasōpētairghr̥taṁ śōṣaharaṁ param| <br /> |
− | pippalīpippalīmūlacavyacitrakanāgaraiḥ||169|| | + | pippalīpippalīmūlacavyacitrakanāgaraiḥ||169|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sayāvaśūkaiḥ sakṣīraiḥ srōtasāṁ śōdhanaṁ ghr̥tam| | + | sayāvaśūkaiḥ sakṣīraiḥ srōtasāṁ śōdhanaṁ ghr̥tam| <br /> |
− | rāsnābalāgōkṣurakasthirāvarṣābhusādhitam||170|| | + | rāsnābalāgōkṣurakasthirāvarṣābhusādhitam||170|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jīvantīpippalīgarbhaṁ sakṣīraṁ śōṣanudghr̥tam| | + | jīvantīpippalīgarbhaṁ sakṣīraṁ śōṣanudghr̥tam| <br /> |
− | yavāgvā vā pibēnmātrāṁ lihyādvā madhunā saha||171|| | + | yavāgvā vā pibēnmātrāṁ lihyādvā madhunā saha||171|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | siddhānāṁ sarpiṣāmēṣāmadyādannēna vā saha| | + | siddhānāṁ sarpiṣāmēṣāmadyādannēna vā saha| <br /> |
− | śuṣyatāmēṣa nirdiṣṭō vidhirābhyavahārikaḥ||172|| | + | śuṣyatāmēṣa nirdiṣṭō vidhirābhyavahārikaḥ||172||<br /> |
| | | |
− | mAMsAdamAMsasvarase siddhaM sarpiH prayojayet||167|| | + | mAMsAdamAMsasvarase siddhaM sarpiH prayojayet||167|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sakShaudraM, payasA siddhaM sarpirdashaguNena vA| | + | sakShaudraM, payasA siddhaM sarpirdashaguNena vA| <br /> |
− | siddhaM madhurakairdravyairdashamUlakaShAyakaiH||168|| | + | siddhaM madhurakairdravyairdashamUlakaShAyakaiH||168||<br /> |
| | | |
− | kShIramAMsarasopetairghRutaM shoShaharaM param| | + | kShIramAMsarasopetairghRutaM shoShaharaM param| <br /> |
− | pippalIpippalImUlacavyacitrakanAgaraiH||169|| | + | pippalIpippalImUlacavyacitrakanAgaraiH||169|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | sayAvashUkaiH sakShIraiH srotasAM shodhanaM ghRutam| | + | sayAvashUkaiH sakShIraiH srotasAM shodhanaM ghRutam| <br /> |
− | rAsnAbalAgokShurakasthirAvarShAbhusAdhitam||170|| | + | rAsnAbalAgokShurakasthirAvarShAbhusAdhitam||170|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | jIvantIpippalIgarbhaM sakShIraM shoShanudghRutam| | + | jIvantIpippalIgarbhaM sakShIraM shoShanudghRutam| <br /> |
− | yavAgvA vA pibenmAtrAM lihyAdvA madhunA saha||171|| | + | yavAgvA vA pibenmAtrAM lihyAdvA madhunA saha||171|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | siddhAnAM sarpiShAmeShAmadyAdannena vA saha| | + | siddhAnAM sarpiShAmeShAmadyAdannena vA saha| <br /> |
− | shuShyatAmeSha nirdiShTo vidhirAbhyavahArikaH||172|| | + | shuShyatAmeSha nirdiShTo vidhirAbhyavahArikaH||172||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The ghee prepared with the meat-juice of carnivorous animals may be administered with honey to the ''rajayakshma'' patient or the ghee prepared in ten times the quantity of milk may be given to the patient. The medicated ghee prepared in the decoction of ''dashamula'', milk and meat-juice with the paste of drugs of the ''madhura'' (sweet) group is an excellent remedy for ''rajayakshma''. | | The ghee prepared with the meat-juice of carnivorous animals may be administered with honey to the ''rajayakshma'' patient or the ghee prepared in ten times the quantity of milk may be given to the patient. The medicated ghee prepared in the decoction of ''dashamula'', milk and meat-juice with the paste of drugs of the ''madhura'' (sweet) group is an excellent remedy for ''rajayakshma''. |
Line 1,841: |
Line 1,983: |
| | | |
| ==== External treatments ==== | | ==== External treatments ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | बहिःस्पर्शनमाश्रित्य वक्ष्यतेऽतः परं विधिः| | + | बहिःस्पर्शनमाश्रित्य वक्ष्यतेऽतः परं विधिः| <br /> |
− | स्नेहक्षीराम्बुकोष्ठेषु स्वभ्यक्तमवगाहयेत्||१७३|| | + | स्नेहक्षीराम्बुकोष्ठेषु स्वभ्यक्तमवगाहयेत्||१७३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्रोतोविबन्धमोक्षार्थं बलपुष्ट्यर्थमेव च| | + | स्रोतोविबन्धमोक्षार्थं बलपुष्ट्यर्थमेव च| <br /> |
− | उत्तीर्णं मिश्रकैःस्नेहैः पुनराक्तैः सुखैः करैः||१७४|| | + | उत्तीर्णं मिश्रकैःस्नेहैः पुनराक्तैः सुखैः करैः||१७४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | मृद्नीयात् सुखमासीनं सुखं चोत्सादयेन्नरम्| | + | मृद्नीयात् सुखमासीनं सुखं चोत्सादयेन्नरम्| <br /> |
− | जीवन्तीं शतवीर्यां च विकसां सपुनर्नवाम्||१७५|| | + | जीवन्तीं शतवीर्यां च विकसां सपुनर्नवाम्||१७५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | अश्वगन्धामपामार्गं तर्कारीं मधुकं बलाम्| | + | अश्वगन्धामपामार्गं तर्कारीं मधुकं बलाम्| <br /> |
− | विदारीं सर्षपं कुष्ठं तण्डुलानतसीफलम्||१७६|| | + | विदारीं सर्षपं कुष्ठं तण्डुलानतसीफलम्||१७६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | माषांस्तिलांश्च किण्वं च सर्वमेकत्र चूर्णयेत्| | + | माषांस्तिलांश्च किण्वं च सर्वमेकत्र चूर्णयेत्| <br /> |
− | यवचूर्णत्रिगुणितं दध्ना युक्तं समाक्षिकम्||१७७|| | + | यवचूर्णत्रिगुणितं दध्ना युक्तं समाक्षिकम्||१७७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | एतदुत्सादनं कार्यं पुष्टिवर्णबलप्रदम्| | + | एतदुत्सादनं कार्यं पुष्टिवर्णबलप्रदम्| <br /> |
− | गौरसर्षपकल्केन कल्कैश्चापि सुगन्धिभिः||१७८|| | + | गौरसर्षपकल्केन कल्कैश्चापि सुगन्धिभिः||१७८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्नायादृतुसुखैस्तोयैर्जीवनीयौषधैः शृतैः|१७९| | + | स्नायादृतुसुखैस्तोयैर्जीवनीयौषधैः शृतैः|१७९|<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | bahiḥsparśanamāśritya vakṣyatē'taḥ paraṁ vidhiḥ| | + | bahiḥsparśanamāśritya vakṣyatē'taḥ paraṁ vidhiḥ| <br /> |
− | snēhakṣīrāmbukōṣṭhēṣu svabhyaktamavagāhayēt||173|| | + | snēhakṣīrāmbukōṣṭhēṣu svabhyaktamavagāhayēt||173|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srōtōvibandhamōkṣārthaṁ balapuṣṭyarthamēva ca| | + | srōtōvibandhamōkṣārthaṁ balapuṣṭyarthamēva ca| <br /> |
− | uttīrṇaṁ miśrakaiḥsnēhaiḥ punarāktaiḥ sukhaiḥ karaiḥ||174|| | + | uttīrṇaṁ miśrakaiḥsnēhaiḥ punarāktaiḥ sukhaiḥ karaiḥ||174|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mr̥dnīyāt sukhamāsīnaṁ sukhaṁ cōtsādayēnnaram| | + | mr̥dnīyāt sukhamāsīnaṁ sukhaṁ cōtsādayēnnaram| <br /> |
− | jīvantīṁ śatavīryāṁ ca vikasāṁ sapunarnavām||175|| | + | jīvantīṁ śatavīryāṁ ca vikasāṁ sapunarnavām||175|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | aśvagandhāmapāmārgaṁ tarkārīṁ madhukaṁ balām| | + | aśvagandhāmapāmārgaṁ tarkārīṁ madhukaṁ balām| <br /> |
− | vidārīṁ sarṣapaṁ kuṣṭhaṁ taṇḍulānatasīphalam||176|| | + | vidārīṁ sarṣapaṁ kuṣṭhaṁ taṇḍulānatasīphalam||176|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | māṣāṁstilāṁśca kiṇvaṁ ca sarvamēkatra cūrṇayēt| | + | māṣāṁstilāṁśca kiṇvaṁ ca sarvamēkatra cūrṇayēt| <br /> |
− | yavacūrṇatriguṇitaṁ dadhnā yuktaṁ samākṣikam||177|| | + | yavacūrṇatriguṇitaṁ dadhnā yuktaṁ samākṣikam||177|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ētadutsādanaṁ kāryaṁ puṣṭivarṇabalapradam| | + | ētadutsādanaṁ kāryaṁ puṣṭivarṇabalapradam| <br /> |
− | gaurasarṣapakalkēna kalkaiścāpi sugandhibhiḥ||178|| | + | gaurasarṣapakalkēna kalkaiścāpi sugandhibhiḥ||178|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | snāyādr̥tusukhaistōyairjīvanīyauṣadhaiḥ śr̥taiḥ|179| | + | snāyādr̥tusukhaistōyairjīvanīyauṣadhaiḥ śr̥taiḥ|179|<br /> |
| | | |
− | bahiHsparshanamAshritya vakShyate~ataH paraM vidhiH| | + | bahiHsparshanamAshritya vakShyate~ataH paraM vidhiH| <br /> |
− | snehakShIrAmbukoShTheShu svabhyaktamavagAhayet||173|| | + | snehakShIrAmbukoShTheShu svabhyaktamavagAhayet||173|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | srotovibandhamokShArthaM balapuShTyarthameva ca| | + | srotovibandhamokShArthaM balapuShTyarthameva ca| <br /> |
− | uttIrNaM mishrakaiHsnehaiH punarAktaiH sukhaiH karaiH||174|| | + | uttIrNaM mishrakaiHsnehaiH punarAktaiH sukhaiH karaiH||174|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | mRudnIyAt sukhamAsInaM sukhaM cotsAdayennaram| | + | mRudnIyAt sukhamAsInaM sukhaM cotsAdayennaram| <br /> |
− | jIvantIM shatavIryAM ca vikasAM sapunarnavAm||175|| | + | jIvantIM shatavIryAM ca vikasAM sapunarnavAm||175|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | ashvagandhAmapAmArgaM tarkArIM madhukaM balAm| | + | ashvagandhAmapAmArgaM tarkArIM madhukaM balAm| <br /> |
− | vidArIM sarShapaM kuShThaM taNDulAnatasIphalam||176|| | + | vidArIM sarShapaM kuShThaM taNDulAnatasIphalam||176||<br /> |
| | | |
− | mAShAMstilAMshca kiNvaM ca sarvamekatra cUrNayet| | + | mAShAMstilAMshca kiNvaM ca sarvamekatra cUrNayet| <br /> |
− | yavacUrNatriguNitaM dadhnA yuktaM samAkShikam||177|| | + | yavacUrNatriguNitaM dadhnA yuktaM samAkShikam||177|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | etadutsAdanaM kAryaM puShTivarNabalapradam| | + | etadutsAdanaM kAryaM puShTivarNabalapradam| <br /> |
− | gaurasarShapakalkena kalkaishcApi sugandhibhiH||178|| | + | gaurasarShapakalkena kalkaishcApi sugandhibhiH||178|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | snAyAdRutusukhaistoyairjIvanIyauShadhaiH shRutaiH|179| | + | snAyAdRutusukhaistoyairjIvanIyauShadhaiH shRutaiH|179|<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The patient, after being proper therapeutic massage, should be given a tub- bath with unctuous liquid, milk and water in order to mitigate the constriction of the channels and to enhance vigor and plumpness. After tub-bath, the patient should be made to sit at his ease and once again be treated with a gentle massage lightly with hands utilizing ''mishraka sneha''( mixed forms of ''sneha''), and then with a massage mixed with powder and unctuous matter as described below. Take cork swallow wort, scotch grass, ''mudar'', hog-weed, winter cherry, rough chaff, wind killer, liquorice, heart-leaved ''sida'', white yam, rape seed, costus, rice, linseed, ebony gram, ''til'' and yeast, and powder the mixture . Co-mix this with thrice its quantity of barley powder and integrate curds and honey; this should be utilized for massage for promoting plumpness, complexion and vitality. Then the patient should take a bath in water in which have been boiled vitality-enhancing herbs, the paste of white mustard and the paste of fragrant substances, cooling the water to the degree of temperature found congenial in the particular season. [173-179] | | The patient, after being proper therapeutic massage, should be given a tub- bath with unctuous liquid, milk and water in order to mitigate the constriction of the channels and to enhance vigor and plumpness. After tub-bath, the patient should be made to sit at his ease and once again be treated with a gentle massage lightly with hands utilizing ''mishraka sneha''( mixed forms of ''sneha''), and then with a massage mixed with powder and unctuous matter as described below. Take cork swallow wort, scotch grass, ''mudar'', hog-weed, winter cherry, rough chaff, wind killer, liquorice, heart-leaved ''sida'', white yam, rape seed, costus, rice, linseed, ebony gram, ''til'' and yeast, and powder the mixture . Co-mix this with thrice its quantity of barley powder and integrate curds and honey; this should be utilized for massage for promoting plumpness, complexion and vitality. Then the patient should take a bath in water in which have been boiled vitality-enhancing herbs, the paste of white mustard and the paste of fragrant substances, cooling the water to the degree of temperature found congenial in the particular season. [173-179] |
| | | |
| ==== Lifestyle treatments ==== | | ==== Lifestyle treatments ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | गन्धैः समाल्यैर्वासोभिर्भूषणैश्च विभूषितः||१७९|| | + | गन्धैः समाल्यैर्वासोभिर्भूषणैश्च विभूषितः||१७९|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | स्पृश्यान् संस्पृश्य सम्पूज्य देवताः सभिषग्द्विजाः| | + | स्पृश्यान् संस्पृश्य सम्पूज्य देवताः सभिषग्द्विजाः| <br /> |
− | इष्टवर्णरसस्पर्शगन्धवत् पानभोजनम्||१८०|| | + | इष्टवर्णरसस्पर्शगन्धवत् पानभोजनम्||१८०|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | इष्टमिष्टैरुपहितं सुखमद्यात् [१] सुखप्रदम्| | + | इष्टमिष्टैरुपहितं सुखमद्यात् [१] सुखप्रदम्| <br /> |
− | समातीतानि धान्यानि कल्पनीयानि शुष्यताम्||१८१|| | + | समातीतानि धान्यानि कल्पनीयानि शुष्यताम्||१८१|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | लघून्यहीनवीर्याणि स्वादूनि गन्धवन्ति च| | + | लघून्यहीनवीर्याणि स्वादूनि गन्धवन्ति च| <br /> |
− | यानि प्रहर्षकारीणि तानि पथ्यतमानि हि||१८२|| | + | यानि प्रहर्षकारीणि तानि पथ्यतमानि हि||१८२|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यच्चोपदेक्ष्यते पथ्यं [२] क्षतक्षीणचिकित्सिते| | + | यच्चोपदेक्ष्यते पथ्यं [२] क्षतक्षीणचिकित्सिते| <br /> |
− | यक्ष्मिणस्तत् प्रयोक्तव्यं बलमांसाभिवृद्धये||१८३|| | + | यक्ष्मिणस्तत् प्रयोक्तव्यं बलमांसाभिवृद्धये||१८३|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | अभ्यङ्गोत्सादनैश्चैव वासोभिरहतैः प्रियैः| | + | अभ्यङ्गोत्सादनैश्चैव वासोभिरहतैः प्रियैः| <br /> |
− | यथर्तुविहितैः स्नानैरवगाहैर्विमार्जनैः||१८४|| | + | यथर्तुविहितैः स्नानैरवगाहैर्विमार्जनैः||१८४|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | बस्तिभिः क्षीरसर्पिर्भिर्मांसैर्मांसरसौदनैः| | + | बस्तिभिः क्षीरसर्पिर्भिर्मांसैर्मांसरसौदनैः| <br /> |
− | इष्टैर्मद्यैर्मनोज्ञानां गन्धानामुपसेवनैः||१८५|| | + | इष्टैर्मद्यैर्मनोज्ञानां गन्धानामुपसेवनैः||१८५|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सुहृदां रमणीयानां प्रमदानां च दर्शनैः| | + | सुहृदां रमणीयानां प्रमदानां च दर्शनैः| <br /> |
− | गीतवादित्रशब्दैश्च प्रियश्रुतिभिरेव च||१८६|| | + | गीतवादित्रशब्दैश्च प्रियश्रुतिभिरेव च||१८६|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | हर्षणाश्वासनैर्नित्यं गुरूणां समुपासनैः| | + | हर्षणाश्वासनैर्नित्यं गुरूणां समुपासनैः| <br /> |
− | ब्रह्मचर्येण दानेन तपसा देवतार्चनैः||१८७|| | + | ब्रह्मचर्येण दानेन तपसा देवतार्चनैः||१८७|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | सत्येनाचारयोगेन मङ्गल्यैरप्यहिंसया| | + | सत्येनाचारयोगेन मङ्गल्यैरप्यहिंसया| <br /> |
− | वैद्यविप्रार्चनाच्चैव रोगराजो निवर्तते||१८८|| | + | वैद्यविप्रार्चनाच्चैव रोगराजो निवर्तते||१८८|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | यया प्रयुक्तया चेष्ट्या राजयक्ष्मा पुरा जितः| | + | यया प्रयुक्तया चेष्ट्या राजयक्ष्मा पुरा जितः| <br /> |
− | तां वेदविहितामिष्टिमारोग्यार्थी प्रयोजयेत्||१८९|| | + | तां वेदविहितामिष्टिमारोग्यार्थी प्रयोजयेत्||१८९||<br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | gandhaiḥ samālyairvāsōbhirbhūṣaṇaiśca vibhūṣitaḥ||179|| | + | gandhaiḥ samālyairvāsōbhirbhūṣaṇaiśca vibhūṣitaḥ||179|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | spr̥śyān saṁspr̥śya sampūjya dēvatāḥ sabhiṣagdvijāḥ| | + | spr̥śyān saṁspr̥śya sampūjya dēvatāḥ sabhiṣagdvijāḥ| <br /> |
− | iṣṭavarṇarasasparśagandhavat pānabhōjanam||180|| | + | iṣṭavarṇarasasparśagandhavat pānabhōjanam||180|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iṣṭamiṣṭairupahitaṁ sukhamadyāt [1] sukhapradam| | + | iṣṭamiṣṭairupahitaṁ sukhamadyāt [1] sukhapradam| <br /> |
− | samātītāni dhānyāni kalpanīyāni śuṣyatām||181|| | + | samātītāni dhānyāni kalpanīyāni śuṣyatām||181|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | laghūnyahīnavīryāṇi svādūni gandhavanti ca| | + | laghūnyahīnavīryāṇi svādūni gandhavanti ca| <br /> |
− | yāni praharṣakārīṇi tāni pathyatamāni hi||182|| | + | yāni praharṣakārīṇi tāni pathyatamāni hi||182|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yaccōpadēkṣyatē pathyaṁ [2] kṣatakṣīṇacikitsitē| | + | yaccōpadēkṣyatē pathyaṁ [2] kṣatakṣīṇacikitsitē| <br /> |
− | yakṣmiṇastat prayōktavyaṁ balamāṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||183|| | + | yakṣmiṇastat prayōktavyaṁ balamāṁsābhivr̥ddhayē||183|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | abhyaṅgōtsādanaiścaiva vāsōbhirahataiḥ priyaiḥ| | + | abhyaṅgōtsādanaiścaiva vāsōbhirahataiḥ priyaiḥ| <br /> |
− | yathartuvihitaiḥ snānairavagāhairvimārjanaiḥ||184|| | + | yathartuvihitaiḥ snānairavagāhairvimārjanaiḥ||184|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bastibhiḥ kṣīrasarpirbhirmāṁsairmāṁsarasaudanaiḥ| | + | bastibhiḥ kṣīrasarpirbhirmāṁsairmāṁsarasaudanaiḥ| <br /> |
− | iṣṭairmadyairmanōjñānāṁ gandhānāmupasēvanaiḥ||185|| | + | iṣṭairmadyairmanōjñānāṁ gandhānāmupasēvanaiḥ||185|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | suhr̥dāṁ ramaṇīyānāṁ pramadānāṁ ca darśanaiḥ| | + | suhr̥dāṁ ramaṇīyānāṁ pramadānāṁ ca darśanaiḥ| <br /> |
− | gītavāditraśabdaiśca priyaśrutibhirēva ca||186|| | + | gītavāditraśabdaiśca priyaśrutibhirēva ca||186||<br /> |
| | | |
− | harṣaṇāśvāsanairnityaṁ gurūṇāṁ samupāsanaiḥ| | + | harṣaṇāśvāsanairnityaṁ gurūṇāṁ samupāsanaiḥ| <br /> |
− | brahmacaryēṇa dānēna tapasā dēvatārcanaiḥ||187|| | + | brahmacaryēṇa dānēna tapasā dēvatārcanaiḥ||187|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | satyēnācārayōgēna maṅgalyairapyahiṁsayā| | + | satyēnācārayōgēna maṅgalyairapyahiṁsayā| <br /> |
− | vaidyaviprārcanāccaiva rōgarājō nivartatē||188|| | + | vaidyaviprārcanāccaiva rōgarājō nivartatē||188|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yayā prayuktayā cēṣṭyā rājayakṣmā purā jitaḥ| | + | yayā prayuktayā cēṣṭyā rājayakṣmā purā jitaḥ| <br /> |
− | tāṁ vēdavihitāmiṣṭimārōgyārthī [3] prayōjayēt||189|| | + | tāṁ vēdavihitāmiṣṭimārōgyārthī [3] prayōjayēt||189||<br /> |
| | | |
− | gandhaiH samAlyairvAsobhirbhUShaNaishca vibhUShitaH||179|| | + | gandhaiH samAlyairvAsobhirbhUShaNaishca vibhUShitaH||179||<br /> |
| | | |
− | spRushyAn saMspRushya sampUjya devatAH sabhiShagdvijAH| | + | spRushyAn saMspRushya sampUjya devatAH sabhiShagdvijAH| <br /> |
− | iShTavarNarasasparshagandhavat pAnabhojanam||180|| | + | iShTavarNarasasparshagandhavat pAnabhojanam||180|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | iShTamiShTairupahitaM sukhamadyAt [1] sukhapradam| | + | iShTamiShTairupahitaM sukhamadyAt [1] sukhapradam|<br /> |
− | samAtItAni dhAnyAni kalpanIyAni shuShyatAm||181|| | + | samAtItAni dhAnyAni kalpanIyAni shuShyatAm||181|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | laghUnyahInavIryANi svAdUni gandhavanti ca| | + | laghUnyahInavIryANi svAdUni gandhavanti ca| <br /> |
− | yAni praharShakArINi tAni pathyatamAni hi||182|| | + | yAni praharShakArINi tAni pathyatamAni hi||182|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yaccopadekShyate pathyaM [2] kShatakShINacikitsite| | + | yaccopadekShyate pathyaM [2] kShatakShINacikitsite| <br /> |
− | yakShmiNastat prayoktavyaM balamAMsAbhivRuddhaye||183|| | + | yakShmiNastat prayoktavyaM balamAMsAbhivRuddhaye||183|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | abhya~ggotsAdanaishcaiva vAsobhirahataiH priyaiH| | + | abhya~ggotsAdanaishcaiva vAsobhirahataiH priyaiH| <br /> |
− | yathartuvihitaiH snAnairavagAhairvimArjanaiH||184|| | + | yathartuvihitaiH snAnairavagAhairvimArjanaiH||184|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | bastibhiH kShIrasarpirbhirmAMsairmAMsarasaudanaiH| | + | bastibhiH kShIrasarpirbhirmAMsairmAMsarasaudanaiH| <br /> |
− | iShTairmadyairmanoj~jAnAM gandhAnAmupasevanaiH||185|| | + | iShTairmadyairmanoj~jAnAM gandhAnAmupasevanaiH||185|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | suhRudAM ramaNIyAnAM pramadAnAM ca darshanaiH| | + | suhRudAM ramaNIyAnAM pramadAnAM ca darshanaiH| <br /> |
− | gItavAditrashabdaishca priyashrutibhireva ca||186|| | + | gItavAditrashabdaishca priyashrutibhireva ca||186|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | harShaNAshvAsanairnityaM gurUNAM samupAsanaiH| | + | harShaNAshvAsanairnityaM gurUNAM samupAsanaiH| <br /> |
− | brahmacaryeNa dAnena tapasA devatArcanaiH||187|| | + | brahmacaryeNa dAnena tapasA devatArcanaiH||187|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | satyenAcArayogena ma~ggalyairapyahiMsayA| | + | satyenAcArayogena ma~ggalyairapyahiMsayA| <br /> |
− | vaidyaviprArcanAccaiva rogarAjo nivartate||188|| | + | vaidyaviprArcanAccaiva rogarAjo nivartate||188|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | yayA prayuktayA ceShTyA rAjayakShmA purA jitaH| | + | yayA prayuktayA ceShTyA rAjayakShmA purA jitaH| <br /> |
− | tAM vedavihitAmiShTimArogyArthI [3] prayojayet||189|| | + | tAM vedavihitAmiShTimArogyArthI [3] prayojayet||189||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| The consumptive patient should then adorn himself with perfumes, flower garlands, habiliments and ornaments, touch auspicious articles, worship the gods, the ''Brahmins'' and the ''Vaidya''. He should eat suitable food and drink with favorite color, taste, feel and odor, prepared by agreeable persons and leading to comfort. Those grains, which are a year old, are to be utilized in the preparation of food for the patients of ''rajayakshma''. Those which are light to digest , which have not lost their nutritive quality and which are dainty, fragrant and virilific, are the most wholesome. The ''rajayakshma'' patients, in order to amend their vigor and flesh must utilize those articles that are prescribed as wholesome in the treatment of ''kshata-kshina''(chapter 11). It is a recourse to inunction (applying oil), massage, congenial and untorn garments, effusions, baths immersion baths, internal and external cleansing which are congruous to the prevailing season, enemata, milk ghee, meat-foods cooked rice commixed with meat juices, suitable wines, delectable perfumes, optical discernment of friends, comely things and adolescent women, the congenial sound of musical compositions and the musical instruments , cheering and comforting words, constant accommodation to preceptors and elders, practice of ''brahmacharya'', charity, austerity, worship of the gods, truth, rectitudinous, conduct, auspicious rites, nonviolence and deference to the physician and Brahmins, that one gets liberate from ''rajayakshma'' , the king of disease. The patient desirous of regaining his health should perform the same spiritual therapies enjoined by the ''vedas'' as those by the performance of which this king of diseases was subdued in the first instance. [179-189] | | The consumptive patient should then adorn himself with perfumes, flower garlands, habiliments and ornaments, touch auspicious articles, worship the gods, the ''Brahmins'' and the ''Vaidya''. He should eat suitable food and drink with favorite color, taste, feel and odor, prepared by agreeable persons and leading to comfort. Those grains, which are a year old, are to be utilized in the preparation of food for the patients of ''rajayakshma''. Those which are light to digest , which have not lost their nutritive quality and which are dainty, fragrant and virilific, are the most wholesome. The ''rajayakshma'' patients, in order to amend their vigor and flesh must utilize those articles that are prescribed as wholesome in the treatment of ''kshata-kshina''(chapter 11). It is a recourse to inunction (applying oil), massage, congenial and untorn garments, effusions, baths immersion baths, internal and external cleansing which are congruous to the prevailing season, enemata, milk ghee, meat-foods cooked rice commixed with meat juices, suitable wines, delectable perfumes, optical discernment of friends, comely things and adolescent women, the congenial sound of musical compositions and the musical instruments , cheering and comforting words, constant accommodation to preceptors and elders, practice of ''brahmacharya'', charity, austerity, worship of the gods, truth, rectitudinous, conduct, auspicious rites, nonviolence and deference to the physician and Brahmins, that one gets liberate from ''rajayakshma'' , the king of disease. The patient desirous of regaining his health should perform the same spiritual therapies enjoined by the ''vedas'' as those by the performance of which this king of diseases was subdued in the first instance. [179-189] |
| | | |
| ==== Summary ==== | | ==== Summary ==== |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible mw-collapsed"> |
| | | |
− | तत्र श्लोकौ- | + | तत्र श्लोकौ- <br /> |
| | | |
− | प्रागुत्पत्तिर्निमित्तानि प्राग्रूपं रूपसङ्ग्रहः| | + | प्रागुत्पत्तिर्निमित्तानि प्राग्रूपं रूपसङ्ग्रहः| <br /> |
− | समासाद् व्यासतश्चोक्तं भेषजं राजयक्ष्मणः||१९०|| | + | समासाद् व्यासतश्चोक्तं भेषजं राजयक्ष्मणः||१९०||<br /> |
| | | |
− | नामहेतुरसाध्यत्वं साध्यत्वं कृच्छ्रसाध्यता| | + | नामहेतुरसाध्यत्वं साध्यत्वं कृच्छ्रसाध्यता| <br /> |
− | इत्युक्तः सङ्ग्रहः कृत्स्नो राजयक्ष्मचिकित्सिते||१९१|| | + | इत्युक्तः सङ्ग्रहः कृत्स्नो राजयक्ष्मचिकित्सिते||१९१|| <br /> |
| + | <div class="mw-collapsible-content"> |
| | | |
− | tatra ślōkau- | + | tatra ślōkau- <br /> |
| | | |
− | prāgutpattirnimittāni prāgrūpaṁ rūpasaṅgrahaḥ| | + | prāgutpattirnimittāni prāgrūpaṁ rūpasaṅgrahaḥ| <br /> |
− | samāsād vyāsataścōktaṁ bhēṣajaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ||190|| | + | samāsād vyāsataścōktaṁ bhēṣajaṁ rājayakṣmaṇaḥ||190|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | nāmahēturasādhyatvaṁ sādhyatvaṁ kr̥cchrasādhyatā| | + | nāmahēturasādhyatvaṁ sādhyatvaṁ kr̥cchrasādhyatā| <br /> |
− | ityuktaḥ saṅgrahaḥ kr̥tsnō rājayakṣmacikitsitē||191|| | + | ityuktaḥ saṅgrahaḥ kr̥tsnō rājayakṣmacikitsitē||191|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | tatra shlokau- | + | tatra shlokau- <br /> |
| | | |
− | prAgutpattirnimittAni prAgrUpaM rUpasa~ggrahaH| | + | prAgutpattirnimittAni prAgrUpaM rUpasa~ggrahaH| <br /> |
− | samAsAd vyAsatashcoktaM bheShajaM rAjayakShmaNaH||190|| | + | samAsAd vyAsatashcoktaM bheShajaM rAjayakShmaNaH||190|| <br /> |
| | | |
− | nAmaheturasAdhyatvaM sAdhyatvaM kRucchrasAdhyatA| | + | nAmaheturasAdhyatvaM sAdhyatvaM kRucchrasAdhyatA| <br /> |
− | ityuktaH sa~ggrahaH kRutsno rAjayakShmacikitsite||191|| | + | ityuktaH sa~ggrahaH kRutsno rAjayakShmacikitsite||191||<br /> |
| + | </div></div> |
| | | |
| Concerning ''rajayakshma'', the protogenesis, etiological factors, premonitory symptoms band syndromes of designations and symptoms have been described in brief and methods of treatment extensively. Explanations of the designation of ''rajayakshma,'' incurable, curable, and formidable conditions: these have been addressed in this chapter on the ‘ Therapeutics of ''rajayakshma'' ’. [190-191] | | Concerning ''rajayakshma'', the protogenesis, etiological factors, premonitory symptoms band syndromes of designations and symptoms have been described in brief and methods of treatment extensively. Explanations of the designation of ''rajayakshma,'' incurable, curable, and formidable conditions: these have been addressed in this chapter on the ‘ Therapeutics of ''rajayakshma'' ’. [190-191] |